Weekly classic film-related e-books from Meredy.com

Friday, May 15, 2009

Weekly Meredy.com E-book - Little Women - Part One

I love reading the books on which many classic flicks are based. In fact, I collect them. I thought you might like to read them, too. So, I'm starting something new. A free classic movie-related e-book will be featured weekly on my blog. And there will be a surprise waiting for you at the end of each book. :)

For today, I've chosen an old favorite of mine: Little Women by Louisa May Alcott.

Louisa May Alcott (November 29, 1832 – March 6, 1888) was an American novelist. She is best known for the novel Little Women, published in 1868. This novel is loosely based on her childhood experiences with her three sisters.

Despite worsening health, Alcott wrote through the rest of her life, finally succumbing to the after-effects of mercury poisoning contracted during her American Civil War service: she had received calomel treatments for the effects of typhoid.

Little Women or Meg, Jo, Beth and Amy was written and published in two parts in 1868 and 1869, the novel follows the lives of four sisters — Meg, Jo, Beth and Amy March — and is loosely based on the author's childhood experiences with her three sisters. The first part of the book was an immediate commercial and critical success and prompted the composition of the book's second part, also a huge success. Both parts were first published as a single volume in 1880. Alcott followed Little Women with two sequels reprising the March sisters, Little Men (1871) and Jo's Boys (1886). Little Women has been adapted to play, musical, opera, film and animated feature.

Little Women has seen several cinematic adaptations. One of the first film adaptations was the 1918 Harley Knoles-directed version, starring Dorothy Bernard, Kate Lester and Conrad Nagel. One of the most famous (the 1933 version) starred Katharine Hepburn as Jo and Spring Byington as Marmee. The film was followed by a 1949 version featuring Elizabeth Taylor as Amy, June Allyson as Jo, Janet Leigh as Meg, Margaret O'Brien as Beth, Mary Astor as Marmee, Peter Lawford as Laurie, and C. Aubrey Smith as the elderly Mr. Lawrence. A 1978 version starred Meredith Baxter as Meg, Susan Dey as Jo, Eve Plumb as Beth, William Shatner as Friedrich Bhaer, Greer Garson as Aunt March, and Robert Young as Grandpa James Lawrence. A celebrated 1994 version starred Susan Sarandon as Marmee, Winona Ryder as Jo, Kirsten Dunst as the younger Amy, Samantha Mathis as the older Amy, Christian Bale as Laurie, Claire Danes as Beth and Trini Alvarado as Meg. Other film versions of the novel appeared in 1917, 1918, 1946, 1948, 1950, 1958, 1970, 1979, and 2001.

In 2005, Geraldine Brooks published March, a novel exploring the gaps in Little Women, telling the story of Mr. March during the Civil War. It won the Pulitzer Prize for Fiction.





A Meredy.com E-book

Title: Little Women (1868-69; 1880)
Author: Louisa May Alcott
Edition: 1
Language: English
Character set encoding: HTML--Latin-1(ISO-8859-1)--8 bit
Date first posted: March 2009
Date most recently updated: March 2009

This e-book was produced by: Meredy - mrs_skeffington at yahoo dot com

Meredy.com E-books are created from printed editions which are in the public domain, unless a copyright notice is included.
I do NOT keep any eBooks in compliance with a particular paper edition.

Copyright laws are changing all over the world.
Be sure to check the copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing this file.

This e-book is made available at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it.

To contact Meredy, go to http://www.meredy.com.

---

Little Women
By
Louisa May Alcott



CHAPTER ONE

PLAYING PILGRIMS

"Christmas won't be Christmas without any presents," grumbled Jo, lying on the rug.

"It's so dreadful to be poor!" sighed Meg, looking down at her old dress.

"I  don't  think  it's  fair  for  some girls to have plenty of pretty things, and other girls nothing at all," added little Amy, with an injured
sniff.

"We've got Father and Mother, and each other," said Beth contentedly from her corner.

The  four young faces on which the firelight shone brightened at the cheerful words, but darkened again as Jo said sadly, "We haven't got Father,
and  shall  not  have  him  for  a long time." She didn't say "perhaps never," but each silently added it, thinking of Father far away, where the
fighting was.

Nobody  spoke  for  a  minute;  then Meg said in an altered tone, "You know the reason Mother proposed not having any presents this Christmas was
because  it  is going to be a hard winter for everyone; and she thinks we ought not to spend money for pleasure, when our men are suffering so in
the  army.  We can't do much, but we can make our little sacrifices, and ought to do it gladly. But I am afraid I don't," and Meg shook her head,
as she thought regretfully of all the pretty things she wanted.

"But  I  don't  think  the  little we should spend would do any good. We've each got a dollar, and the army wouldn't be much helped by our giving
that.  I agree not to expect anything from Mother or you, but I do want to buy _Undine and Sintran_ for myself. I've wanted it so long," said Jo,
who was a bookworm.

"I planned to spend mine in new music," said Beth, with a little sigh, which no one heard but the hearth brush and kettle-holder.

"I shall get a nice box of Faber's drawing pencils; I really need them," said Amy decidedly.

"Mother didn't say anything about our money, and she won't wish us to give up everything. Let's each buy what we want, and have a little fun; I'm
sure we work hard enough to earn it," cried Jo, examining the heels of her shoes in a gentlemanly manner.

"I  know  I  do--teaching  those  tiresome children nearly all day, when I'm longing to enjoy myself at home," began Meg, in the complaining tone
again.

"You  don't  have  half such a hard time as I do," said Jo. "How would you like to be shut up for hours with a nervous, fussy old lady, who keeps
you trotting, is never satisfied, and worries you till you're ready to fly out the window or cry?"

"It's  naughty to fret, but I do think washing dishes and keeping things tidy is the worst work in the world. It makes me cross, and my hands get
so stiff, I can't practice well at all." And Beth looked at her rough hands with a sigh that any one could hear that time.

"I  don't  believe any of you suffer as I do," cried Amy, "for you don't have to go to school with impertinent girls, who plague you if you don't
know your lessons, and laugh at your dresses, and label your father if he isn't rich, and insult you when your nose isn't nice."

"If you mean libel, I'd say so, and not talk about labels, as if Papa was a pickle bottle," advised Jo, laughing.

"I  know  what  I  mean,  and you needn't be statirical about it. It's proper to use good words, and improve your vocabilary," returned Amy, with
dignity.

"Don't  peck at one another, children. Don't you wish we had the money Papa lost when we were little, Jo? Dear me! How happy and good we'd be, if
we had no worries!" said Meg, who could remember better times.

"You  said the other day you thought we were a deal happier than the King children, for they were fighting and fretting all the time, in spite of
their money."

"So I did, Beth. Well, I think we are. For though we do have to work, we make fun of ourselves, and are a pretty jolly set, as Jo would say."

"Jo does use such slang words!" observed Amy, with a reproving look at the long figure stretched on the rug.

Jo immediately sat up, put her hands in her pockets, and began to whistle.

"Don't, Jo. It's so boyish!"

"That's why I do it."

"I detest rude, unladylike girls!"

"I hate affected, niminy-piminy chits!"

"Birds  in  their  little  nests  agree,"  sang  Beth, the peacemaker, with such a funny face that both sharp voices softened to a laugh, and the
"pecking" ended for that time.

"Really, girls, you are both to be blamed," said Meg, beginning to lecture in her elder-sisterly fashion. "You are old enough to leave off boyish
tricks,  and  to  behave better, Josephine. It didn't matter so much when you were a little girl, but now you are so tall, and turn up your hair,
you should remember that you are a young lady."

"I'm  not!  And if turning up my hair makes me one, I'll wear it in two tails till I'm twenty," cried Jo, pulling off her net, and shaking down a
chestnut  mane.  "I hate to think I've got to grow up, and be Miss March, and wear long gowns, and look as prim as a China Aster! It's bad enough
to  be  a  girl, anyway, when I like boy's games and work and manners! I can't get over my disappointment in not being a boy. And it's worse than
ever now, for I'm dying to go and fight with Papa. And I can only stay home and knit, like a poky old woman!"

And Jo shook the blue army sock till the needles rattled like castanets, and her ball bounded across the room.

"Poor  Jo!  It's too bad, but it can't be helped. So you must try to be contented with making your name boyish, and playing brother to us girls,"
said Beth, stroking the rough head with a hand that all the dish washing and dusting in the world could not make ungentle in its touch.

"As  for  you,  Amy,"  continued Meg, "you are altogether too particular and prim. Your airs are funny now, but you'll grow up an affected little
goose, if you don't take care. I like your nice manners and refined ways of speaking, when you don't try to be elegant. But your absurd words are
as bad as Jo's slang."

"If Jo is a tomboy and Amy a goose, what am I, please?" asked Beth, ready to share the lecture.

"You're a dear, and nothing else," answered Meg warmly, and no one contradicted her, for the 'Mouse' was the pet of the family.

As young readers like to know 'how people look', we will take this moment to give them a little sketch of the four sisters, who sat knitting away
in  the  twilight,  while  the December snow fell quietly without, and the fire crackled cheerfully within. It was a comfortable room, though the
carpet  was  faded  and  the  furniture  very  plain,  for a good picture or two hung on the walls, books filled the recesses, chrysanthemums and
Christmas roses bloomed in the windows, and a pleasant atmosphere of home peace pervaded it.

Margaret,  the eldest of the four, was sixteen, and very pretty, being plump and fair, with large eyes, plenty of soft brown hair, a sweet mouth,
and  white  hands,  of  which  she was rather vain. Fifteen-year-old Jo was very tall, thin, and brown, and reminded one of a colt, for she never
seemed  to  know  what to do with her long limbs, which were very much in her way. She had a decided mouth, a comical nose, and sharp, gray eyes,
which  appeared  to  see  everything, and were by turns fierce, funny, or thoughtful. Her long, thick hair was her one beauty, but it was usually
bundled  into  a  net,  to  be  out  of her way. Round shoulders had Jo, big hands and feet, a flyaway look to her clothes, and the uncomfortable
appearance of a girl who was rapidly shooting up into a woman and didn't like it. Elizabeth, or Beth, as everyone called her, was a rosy, smooth-
haired,  bright-eyed  girl of thirteen, with a shy manner, a timid voice, and a peaceful expression which was seldom disturbed. Her father called
her  'Little  Miss  Tranquility',  and the name suited her excellently, for she seemed to live in a happy world of her own, only venturing out to
meet  the  few  whom  she  trusted  and loved. Amy, though the youngest, was a most important person, in her own opinion at least. A regular snow
maiden,  with blue eyes, and yellow hair curling on her shoulders, pale and slender, and always carrying herself like a young lady mindful of her
manners. What the characters of the four sisters were we will leave to be found out.

The  clock  struck  six  and, having swept up the hearth, Beth put a pair of slippers down to warm. Somehow the sight of the old shoes had a good
effect upon the girls, for Mother was coming, and everyone brightened to welcome her. Meg stopped lecturing, and lighted the lamp, Amy got out of
the easy chair without being asked, and Jo forgot how tired she was as she sat up to hold the slippers nearer to the blaze.

"They are quite worn out. Marmee must have a new pair."

"I thought I'd get her some with my dollar," said Beth.

"No, I shall!" cried Amy.

"I'm  the oldest," began Meg, but Jo cut in with a decided, "I'm the man of the family now Papa is away, and I shall provide the slippers, for he
told me to take special care of Mother while he was gone."

"I'll tell you what we'll do," said Beth, "let's each get her something for Christmas, and not get anything for ourselves."

"That's like you, dear! What will we get?" exclaimed Jo.

Everyone thought soberly for a minute, then Meg announced, as if the idea was suggested by the sight of her own pretty hands, "I shall give her a
nice pair of gloves."

"Army shoes, best to be had," cried Jo.

"Some handkerchiefs, all hemmed," said Beth.

"I'll get a little bottle of cologne. She likes it, and it won't cost much, so I'll have some left to buy my pencils," added Amy.

"How will we give the things?" asked Meg.

"Put them on the table, and bring her in and see her open the bundles. Don't you remember how we used to do on our birthdays?" answered Jo.

"I  used to be so frightened when it was my turn to sit in the chair with the crown on, and see you all come marching round to give the presents,
with a kiss. I liked the things and the kisses, but it was dreadful to have you sit looking at me while I opened the bundles," said Beth, who was
toasting her face and the bread for tea at the same time.

"Let Marmee think we are getting things for ourselves, and then surprise her. We must go shopping tomorrow afternoon, Meg. There is so much to do
about the play for Christmas night," said Jo, marching up and down, with her hands behind her back, and her nose in the air.

"I  don't  mean  to  act  any  more  after  this  time. I'm getting too old for such things," observed Meg, who was as much a child as ever about
'dressing-up' frolics.

"You  won't  stop,  I  know,  as  long  as you can trail round in a white gown with your hair down, and wear gold-paper jewelry. You are the best
actress  we've  got, and there'll be an end of everything if you quit the boards," said Jo. "We ought to rehearse tonight. Come here, Amy, and do
the fainting scene, for you are as stiff as a poker in that."

"I  can't  help  it.  I  never  saw anyone faint, and I don't choose to make myself all black and blue, tumbling flat as you do. If I can go down
easily,  I'll drop. If I can't, I shall fall into a chair and be graceful. I don't care if Hugo does come at me with a pistol," returned Amy, who
was not gifted with dramatic power, but was chosen because she was small enough to be borne out shrieking by the villain of the piece.

"Do  it  this  way. Clasp your hands so, and stagger across the room, crying frantically, 'Roderigo! Save me! Save me!'" and away went Jo, with a
melodramatic scream which was truly thrilling.

Amy  followed,  but  she  poked  her  hands  out stiffly before her, and jerked herself along as if she went by machinery, and her "Ow!" was more
suggestive  of  pins  being run into her than of fear and anguish. Jo gave a despairing groan, and Meg laughed outright, while Beth let her bread
burn  as  she  watched  the fun with interest. "It's no use! Do the best you can when the time comes, and if the audience laughs, don't blame me.
Come on, Meg."

Then  things  went  smoothly,  for Don Pedro defied the world in a speech of two pages without a single break. Hagar, the witch, chanted an awful
incantation  over  her  kettleful  of  simmering toads, with weird effect. Roderigo rent his chains asunder manfully, and Hugo died in agonies of
remorse and arsenic, with a wild, "Ha! Ha!"

"It's the best we've had yet," said Meg, as the dead villain sat up and rubbed his elbows.

"I  don't  see  how  you  can write and act such splendid things, Jo. You're a regular Shakespeare!" exclaimed Beth, who firmly believed that her
sisters were gifted with wonderful genius in all things.

"Not  quite," replied Jo modestly. "I do think _The Witches Curse, an Operatic Tragedy_ is rather a nice thing, but I'd like to try _Macbeth_, if
we only had a trapdoor for Banquo. I always wanted to do the killing part. 'Is that a dagger that I see before me?" muttered Jo, rolling her eyes
and clutching at the air, as she had seen a famous tragedian do.

"No, it's the toasting fork, with Mother's shoe on it instead of the bread. Beth's stage-struck!" cried Meg, and the rehearsal ended in a general
burst of laughter.

"Glad  to  find  you so merry, my girls," said a cheery voice at the door, and actors and audience turned to welcome a tall, motherly lady with a
'can  I  help you' look about her which was truly delightful. She was not elegantly dressed, but a noble-looking woman, and the girls thought the
gray cloak and unfashionable bonnet covered the most splendid mother in the world.

"Well,  dearies,  how  have you got on today? There was so much to do, getting the boxes ready to go tomorrow, that I didn't come home to dinner.
Has anyone called, Beth? How is your cold, Meg? Jo, you look tired to death. Come and kiss me, baby."

While  making  these  maternal inquiries Mrs. March got her wet things off, her warm slippers on, and sitting down in the easy chair, drew Amy to
her  lap, preparing to enjoy the happiest hour of her busy day. The girls flew about, trying to make things comfortable, each in her own way. Meg
arranged  the  tea  table, Jo brought wood and set chairs, dropping, over-turning, and clattering everything she touched. Beth trotted to and fro
between parlor kitchen, quiet and busy, while Amy gave directions to everyone, as she sat with her hands folded.

As they gathered about the table, Mrs. March said, with a particularly happy face, "I've got a treat for you after supper."

A  quick,  bright  smile  went  round like a streak of sunshine. Beth clapped her hands, regardless of the biscuit she held, and Jo tossed up her
napkin, crying, "A letter! A letter! Three cheers for Father!"

"Yes,  a nice long letter. He is well, and thinks he shall get through the cold season better than we feared. He sends all sorts of loving wishes
for Christmas, and an especial message to you girls," said Mrs. March, patting her pocket as if she had got a treasure there.

"Hurry  and  get  done!  Don't  stop  to quirk your little finger and simper over your plate, Amy," cried Jo, choking on her tea and dropping her
bread, butter side down, on the carpet in her haste to get at the treat.

Beth ate no more, but crept away to sit in her shadowy corner and brood over the delight to come, till the others were ready.

"I think it was so splendid in Father to go as chaplain when he was too old to be drafted, and not strong enough for a soldier," said Meg warmly.

"Don't I wish I could go as a drummer, a vivan--what's its name? Or a nurse, so I could be near him and help him," exclaimed Jo, with a groan.

"It must be very disagreeable to sleep in a tent, and eat all sorts of bad-tasting things, and drink out of a tin mug," sighed Amy.

"When will he come home, Marmee?" asked Beth, with a little quiver in her voice.

"Not  for many months, dear, unless he is sick. He will stay and do his work faithfully as long as he can, and we won't ask for him back a minute
sooner than he can be spared. Now come and hear the letter."

They  all  drew to the fire, Mother in the big chair with Beth at her feet, Meg and Amy perched on either arm of the chair, and Jo leaning on the
back,  where  no  one would see any sign of emotion if the letter should happen to be touching. Very few letters were written in those hard times
that were not touching, especially those which fathers sent home. In this one little was said of the hardships endured, the dangers faced, or the
homesickness  conquered. It was a cheerful, hopeful letter, full of lively descriptions of camp life, marches, and military news, and only at the
end did the writer's heart over-flow with fatherly love and longing for the little girls at home.

"Give  them all of my dear love and a kiss. Tell them I think of them by day, pray for them by night, and find my best comfort in their affection
at  all times. A year seems very long to wait before I see them, but remind them that while we wait we may all work, so that these hard days need
not be wasted. I know they will remember all I said to them, that they will be loving children to you, will do their duty faithfully, fight their
bosom  enemies  bravely,  and  conquer themselves so beautifully that when I come back to them I may be fonder and prouder than ever of my little
women."  Everybody  sniffed  when they came to that part. Jo wasn't ashamed of the great tear that dropped off the end of her nose, and Amy never
minded  the  rumpling  of  her  curls as she hid her face on her mother's shoulder and sobbed out, "I am a selfish girl! But I'll truly try to be
better, so he mayn't be disappointed in me by-and-by."

"We all will," cried Meg. "I think too much of my looks and hate to work, but won't any more, if I can help it."

"I'll  try  and  be  what he loves to call me, 'a little woman' and not be rough and wild, but do my duty here instead of wanting to be somewhere
else," said Jo, thinking that keeping her temper at home was a much harder task than facing a rebel or two down South.

Beth  said  nothing, but wiped away her tears with the blue army sock and began to knit with all her might, losing no time in doing the duty that
lay nearest her, while she resolved in her quiet little soul to be all that Father hoped to find her when the year brought round the happy coming
home.

Mrs.  March  broke  the  silence that followed Jo's words, by saying in her cheery voice, "Do you remember how you used to play Pilgrims Progress
when you were little things? Nothing delighted you more than to have me tie my piece bags on your backs for burdens, give you hats and sticks and
rolls  of  paper, and let you travel through the house from the cellar, which was the City of Destruction, up, up, to the housetop, where you had
all the lovely things you could collect to make a Celestial City."

"What fun it was, especially going by the lions, fighting Apollyon, and passing through the valley where the hob-goblins were," said Jo.

"I liked the place where the bundles fell off and tumbled downstairs," said Meg.

"I  don't  remember much about it, except that I was afraid of the cellar and the dark entry, and always liked the cake and milk we had up at the
top.  If  I  wasn't too old for such things, I'd rather like to play it over again," said Amy, who began to talk of renouncing childish things at
the mature age of twelve.

"We  never  are too old for this, my dear, because it is a play we are playing all the time in one way or another. Our burdens are here, our road
is  before  us,  and the longing for goodness and happiness is the guide that leads us through many troubles and mistakes to the peace which is a
true  Celestial City. Now, my little pilgrims, suppose you begin again, not in play, but in earnest, and see how far on you can get before Father
comes home."

"Really, Mother? Where are our bundles?" asked Amy, who was a very literal young lady.

"Each of you told what your burden was just now, except Beth. I rather think she hasn't got any," said her mother.

"Yes, I have. Mine is dishes and dusters, and envying girls with nice pianos, and being afraid of people."

Beth's bundle was such a funny one that everybody wanted to laugh, but nobody did, for it would have hurt her feelings very much.

"Let  us  do  it,"  said Meg thoughtfully. "It is only another name for trying to be good, and the story may help us, for though we do want to be
good, it's hard work and we forget, and don't do our best."

"We  were  in  the Slough of Despond tonight, and Mother came and pulled us out as Help did in the book. We ought to have our roll of directions,
like  Christian.  What shall we do about that?" asked Jo, delighted with the fancy which lent a little romance to the very dull task of doing her
duty.

"Look under your pillows Christmas morning, and you will find your guidebook," replied Mrs. March.

They  talked  over the new plan while old Hannah cleared the table, then out came the four little work baskets, and the needles flew as the girls
made sheets for Aunt March. It was uninteresting sewing, but tonight no one grumbled. They adopted Jo's plan of dividing the long seams into four
parts,  and  calling  the  quarters  Europe,  Asia,  Africa, and America, and in that way got on capitally, especially when they talked about the
different countries as they stitched their way through them.

At  nine they stopped work, and sang, as usual, before they went to bed. No one but Beth could get much music out of the old piano, but she had a
way  of  softly touching the yellow keys and making a pleasant accompaniment to the simple songs they sang. Meg had a voice like a flute, and she
and her mother led the little choir. Amy chirped like a cricket, and Jo wandered through the airs at her own sweet will, always coming out at the
wrong place with a croak or a quaver that spoiled the most pensive tune. They had always done this from the time they could lisp . . .

Crinkle, crinkle, 'ittle 'tar,

and  it had become a household custom, for the mother was a born singer. The first sound in the morning was her voice as she went about the house
singing like a lark, and the last sound at night was the same cheery sound, for the girls never grew too old for that familiar lullaby.



CHAPTER TWO

A MERRY CHRISTMAS

Jo  was  the  first  to  wake  in  the  gray  dawn  of  Christmas  morning. No stockings hung at the fireplace, and for a moment she felt as much
disappointed  as  she  did  long  ago, when her little sock fell down because it was crammed so full of goodies. Then she remembered her mother's
promise  and,  slipping  her  hand under her pillow, drew out a little crimson-covered book. She knew it very well, for it was that beautiful old
story  of  the best life ever lived, and Jo felt that it was a true guidebook for any pilgrim going on a long journey. She woke Meg with a "Merry
Christmas,"  and  bade her see what was under her pillow. A green-covered book appeared, with the same picture inside, and a few words written by
their  mother, which made their one present very precious in their eyes. Presently Beth and Amy woke to rummage and find their little books also,
one dove-colored, the other blue, and all sat looking at and talking about them, while the east grew rosy with the coming day.

In  spite  of her small vanities, Margaret had a sweet and pious nature, which unconsciously influenced her sisters, especially Jo, who loved her
very tenderly, and obeyed her because her advice was so gently given.

"Girls," said Meg seriously, looking from the tumbled head beside her to the two little night-capped ones in the room beyond, "Mother wants us to
read  and  love  and  mind  these  books, and we must begin at once. We used to be faithful about it, but since Father went away and all this war
trouble unsettled us, we have neglected many things. You can do as you please, but I shall keep my book on the table here and read a little every
morning as soon as I wake, for I know it will do me good and help me through the day."

Then  she  opened  her  new book and began to read. Jo put her arm round her and, leaning cheek to cheek, read also, with the quiet expression so
seldom seen on her restless face.

"How  good  Meg  is!  Come,  Amy,  let's  do  as  they do. I'll help you with the hard words, and they'll explain things if we don't understand,"
whispered Beth, very much impressed by the pretty books and her sisters' example.

"I'm  glad  mine  is  blue," said Amy. and then the rooms were very still while the pages were softly turned, and the winter sunshine crept in to
touch the bright heads and serious faces with a Christmas greeting.

"Where is Mother?" asked Meg, as she and Jo ran down to thank her for their gifts, half an hour later.

"Goodness  only  knows.  Some poor creeter came a-beggin', and your ma went straight off to see what was needed. There never was such a woman for
givin'  away vittles and drink, clothes and firin'," replied Hannah, who had lived with the family since Meg was born, and was considered by them
all more as a friend than a servant.

"She  will  be  back  soon, I think, so fry your cakes, and have everything ready," said Meg, looking over the presents which were collected in a
basket  and kept under the sofa, ready to be produced at the proper time. "Why, where is Amy's bottle of cologne?" she added, as the little flask
did not appear.

"She  took  it out a minute ago, and went off with it to put a ribbon on it, or some such notion," replied Jo, dancing about the room to take the
first stiffness off the new army slippers.

"How  nice  my handkerchiefs look, don't they? Hannah washed and ironed them for me, and I marked them all myself," said Beth, looking proudly at
the somewhat uneven letters which had cost her such labor.

"Bless the child! She's gone and put 'Mother' on them instead of 'M. March'. How funny!" cried Jo, taking one up.

"Isn't  that  right? I thought it was better to do it so, because Meg's initials are M.M., and I don't want anyone to use these but Marmee," said
Beth, looking troubled.

"It's  all  right, dear, and a very pretty idea, quite sensible too, for no one can ever mistake now. It will please her very much, I know," said
Meg, with a frown for Jo and a smile for Beth.

"There's Mother. Hide the basket, quick!" cried Jo, as a door slammed and steps sounded in the hall.

Amy came in hastily, and looked rather abashed when she saw her sisters all waiting for her.

"Where  have  you  been,  and  what are you hiding behind you?" asked Meg, surprised to see, by her hood and cloak, that lazy Amy had been out so
early.

"Don't  laugh  at me, Jo! I didn't mean anyone should know till the time came. I only meant to change the little bottle for a big one, and I gave
all my money to get it, and I'm truly trying not to be selfish any more."

As she spoke, Amy showed the handsome flask which replaced the cheap one, and looked so earnest and humble in her little effort to forget herself
that  Meg  hugged  her  on  the  spot,  and Jo pronounced her 'a trump', while Beth ran to the window, and picked her finest rose to ornament the
stately bottle.

"You  see  I  felt  ashamed  of my present, after reading and talking about being good this morning, so I ran round the corner and changed it the
minute I was up, and I'm so glad, for mine is the handsomest now."

Another bang of the street door sent the basket under the sofa, and the girls to the table, eager for breakfast.

"Merry Christmas, Marmee! Many of them! Thank you for our books. We read some, and mean to every day," they all cried in chorus.

"Merry Christmas, little daughters! I'm glad you began at once, and hope you will keep on. But I want to say one word before we sit down. Not far
away  from here lies a poor woman with a little newborn baby. Six children are huddled into one bed to keep from freezing, for they have no fire.
There  is  nothing  to  eat over there, and the oldest boy came to tell me they were suffering hunger and cold. My girls, will you give them your
breakfast as a Christmas present?"

They were all unusually hungry, having waited nearly an hour, and for a minute no one spoke, only a minute, for Jo exclaimed impetuously, "I'm so
glad you came before we began!"

"May I go and help carry the things to the poor little children?" asked Beth eagerly.

"I shall take the cream and the muffings," added Amy, heroically giving up the article she most liked.

Meg was already covering the buckwheats, and piling the bread into one big plate.

"I  thought  you'd  do it," said Mrs. March, smiling as if satisfied. "You shall all go and help me, and when we come back we will have bread and
milk for breakfast, and make it up at dinnertime."

They  were  soon  ready, and the procession set out. Fortunately it was early, and they went through back streets, so few people saw them, and no
one laughed at the queer party.

A  poor,  bare,  miserable room it was, with broken windows, no fire, ragged bedclothes, a sick mother, wailing baby, and a group of pale, hungry
children cuddled under one old quilt, trying to keep warm.

How the big eyes stared and the blue lips smiled as the girls went in.

"Ach, mein Gott! It is good angels come to us!" said the poor woman, crying for joy.

"Funny angels in hoods and mittens," said Jo, and set them to laughing.

In  a  few  minutes  it  really did seem as if kind spirits had been at work there. Hannah, who had carried wood, made a fire, and stopped up the
broken  panes  with  old  hats  and  her  own cloak. Mrs. March gave the mother tea and gruel, and comforted her with promises of help, while she
dressed the little baby as tenderly as if it had been her own. The girls meantime spread the table, set the children round the fire, and fed them
like so many hungry birds, laughing, talking, and trying to understand the funny broken English.

"Das  ist gut!" "Die Engel-kinder!" cried the poor things as they ate and warmed their purple hands at the comfortable blaze. The girls had never
been called angel children before, and thought it very agreeable, especially Jo, who had been considered a 'Sancho' ever since she was born. That
was  a very happy breakfast, though they didn't get any of it. And when they went away, leaving comfort behind, I think there were not in all the
city  four  merrier  people than the hungry little girls who gave away their breakfasts and contented themselves with bread and milk on Christmas
morning.

"That's  loving  our  neighbor  better  than  ourselves, and I like it," said Meg, as they set out their presents while their mother was upstairs
collecting clothes for the poor Hummels.

Not  a  very  splendid  show,  but  there  was  a  great  deal  of  love done up in the few little bundles, and the tall vase of red roses, white
chrysanthemums, and trailing vines, which stood in the middle, gave quite an elegant air to the table.

"She's  coming!  Strike  up, Beth! Open the door, Amy! Three cheers for Marmee!" cried Jo, prancing about while Meg went to conduct Mother to the
seat of honor.

Beth  played her gayest march, Amy threw open the door, and Meg enacted escort with great dignity. Mrs. March was both surprised and touched, and
smiled  with  her  eyes  full  as she examined her presents and read the little notes which accompanied them. The slippers went on at once, a new
handkerchief  was  slipped  into  her  pocket,  well  scented  with  Amy's  cologne, the rose was fastened in her bosom, and the nice gloves were
pronounced a perfect fit.

There  was  a good deal of laughing and kissing and explaining, in the simple, loving fashion which makes these home festivals so pleasant at the
time, so sweet to remember long afterward, and then all fell to work.

The  morning  charities  and ceremonies took so much time that the rest of the day was devoted to preparations for the evening festivities. Being
still  too young to go often to the theater, and not rich enough to afford any great outlay for private performances, the girls put their wits to
work,  and  necessity  being  the mother of invention, made whatever they needed. Very clever were some of their productions, pasteboard guitars,
antique  lamps  made  of  old-fashioned butter boats covered with silver paper, gorgeous robes of old cotton, glittering with tin spangles from a
pickle  factory,  and  armor covered with the same useful diamond shaped bits left in sheets when the lids of preserve pots were cut out. The big
chamber was the scene of many innocent revels.

No  gentleman were admitted, so Jo played male parts to her heart's content and took immense satisfaction in a pair of russet leather boots given
her by a friend, who knew a lady who knew an actor. These boots, an old foil, and a slashed doublet once used by an artist for some picture, were
Jo's  chief  treasures and appeared on all occasions. The smallness of the company made it necessary for the two principal actors to take several
parts  apiece,  and they certainly deserved some credit for the hard work they did in learning three or four different parts, whisking in and out
of  various  costumes,  and  managing the stage besides. It was excellent drill for their memories, a harmless amusement, and employed many hours
which otherwise would have been idle, lonely, or spent in less profitable society.

On  christmas  night,  a  dozen girls piled onto the bed which was the dress circle, and sat before the blue and yellow chintz curtains in a most
flattering  state  of  expectancy. There was a good deal of rustling and whispering behind the curtain, a trifle of lamp smoke, and an occasional
giggle  from  Amy,  who  was  apt  to  get hysterical in the excitement of the moment. Presently a bell sounded, the curtains flew apart, and the
_operatic tragedy_ began.

"A  gloomy  wood,"  according to the one playbill, was represented by a few shrubs in pots, green baize on the floor, and a cave in the distance.
This cave was made with a clothes horse for a roof, bureaus for walls, and in it was a small furnace in full blast, with a black pot on it and an
old witch bending over it. The stage was dark and the glow of the furnace had a fine effect, especially as real steam issued from the kettle when
the  witch  took off the cover. A moment was allowed for the first thrill to subside, then Hugo, the villain, stalked in with a clanking sword at
his  side,  a slouching hat, black beard, mysterious cloak, and the boots. After pacing to and fro in much agitation, he struck his forehead, and
burst out in a wild strain, singing of his hatred for Roderigo, his love for Zara, and his pleasing resolution to kill the one and win the other.
The  gruff  tones  of Hugo's voice, with an occasional shout when his feelings overcame him, were very impressive, and the audience applauded the
moment  he paused for breath. Bowing with the air of one accustomed to public praise, he stole to the cavern and ordered Hagar to come forth with
a commanding, "What ho, minion! I need thee!"

Out  came  Meg,  with  gray horsehair hanging about her face, a red and black robe, a staff, and cabalistic signs upon her cloak. Hugo demanded a
potion  to make Zara adore him, and one to destroy Roderigo. Hagar, in a fine dramatic melody, promised both, and proceeded to call up the spirit
who would bring the love philter.

Hither,  hither,  from thy home, Airy sprite, I bid thee come! Born of roses, fed on dew, Charms and potions canst thou brew? Bring me here, with
elfin speed, The fragrant philter which I need. Make it sweet and swift and strong, Spirit, answer now my song!

A  soft  strain  of music sounded, and then at the back of the cave appeared a little figure in cloudy white, with glittering wings, golden hair,
and a garland of roses on its head. Waving a wand, it sang . . .

Hither I come, From my airy home, Afar in the silver moon. Take the magic spell, And use it well, Or its power will vanish soon!

And  dropping a small, gilded bottle at the witch's feet, the spirit vanished. Another chant from Hagar produced another apparition, not a lovely
one,  for  with a bang an ugly black imp appeared and, having croaked a reply, tossed a dark bottle at Hugo and disappeared with a mocking laugh.
Having  warbled  his  thanks  and put the potions in his boots, Hugo departed, and Hagar informed the audience that as he had killed a few of her
friends  in  times  past,  she  had  cursed him, and intends to thwart his plans, and be revenged on him. Then the curtain fell, and the audience
reposed and ate candy while discussing the merits of the play.

A  good  deal  of hammering went on before the curtain rose again, but when it became evident what a masterpiece of stage carpentery had been got
up,  no  one murmured at the delay. It was truly superb. A tower rose to the ceiling, halfway up appeared a window with a lamp burning in it, and
behind  the  white curtain appeared Zara in a lovely blue and silver dress, waiting for Roderigo. He came in gorgeous array, with plumed cap, red
cloak,  chestnut  lovelocks,  a  guitar,  and  the boots, of course. Kneeling at the foot of the tower, he sang a serenade in melting tones. Zara
replied and, after a musical dialogue, consented to fly. Then came the grand effect of the play. Roderigo produced a rope ladder, with five steps
to  it,  threw up one end, and invited Zara to descend. Timidly she crept from her lattice, put her hand on Roderigo's shoulder, and was about to
leap  gracefully  down when "Alas! Alas for Zara!" she forgot her train. It caught in the window, the tower tottered, leaned forward, fell with a
crash, and buried the unhappy lovers in the ruins.

A  universal  shriek arose as the russet boots waved wildly from the wreck and a golden head emerged, exclaiming, "I told you so! I told you so!"
With wonderful presence of mind, Don Pedro, the cruel sire, rushed in, dragged out his daughter, with a hasty aside . . .

"Don't laugh! Act as if it was all right!" and, ordering Roderigo up, banished him from the kingdom with wrath and scorn. Though decidedly shaken
by  the  fall  from the tower upon him, Roderigo defied the old gentleman and refused to stir. This dauntless example fired Zara. She also defied
her  sire, and he ordered them both to the deepest dungeons of the castle. A stout little retainer came in with chains and led them away, looking
very much frightened and evidently forgetting the speech he ought to have made.

Act  third was the castle hall, and here Hagar appeared, having come to free the lovers and finish Hugo. She hears him coming and hides, sees him
put  the  potions  into  two cups of wine and bid the timid little servant, "Bear them to the captives in their cells, and tell them I shall come
anon."  The  servant  takes  Hugo  aside  to  tell  him  something, and Hagar changes the cups for two others which are harmless. Ferdinando, the
'minion',  carries  them  away, and Hagar puts back the cup which holds the poison meant for Roderigo. Hugo, getting thirsty after a long warble,
drinks  it,  loses his wits, and after a good deal of clutching and stamping, falls flat and dies, while Hagar informs him what she has done in a
song of exquisite power and melody.

This  was  a  truly  thrilling  scene, though some persons might have thought that the sudden tumbling down of a quantity of long red hair rather
marred  the  effect of the villain's death. He was called before the curtain, and with great propriety appeared, leading Hagar, whose singing was
considered more wonderful than all the rest of the performance put together.

Act  fourth  displayed  the despairing Roderigo on the point of stabbing himself because he has been told that Zara has deserted him. Just as the
dagger  is at his heart, a lovely song is sung under his window, informing him that Zara is true but in danger, and he can save her if he will. A
key is thrown in, which unlocks the door, and in a spasm of rapture he tears off his chains and rushes away to find and rescue his lady love.

Act  fifth  opened  with  a  stormy  scene  between Zara and Don Pedro. He wishes her to go into a convent, but she won't hear of it, and after a
touching  appeal,  is  about  to  faint  when  Roderigo dashes in and demands her hand. Don Pedro refuses, because he is not rich. They shout and
gesticulate  tremendously but cannot agree, and Rodrigo is about to bear away the exhausted Zara, when the timid servant enters with a letter and
a  bag from Hagar, who has mysteriously disappeared. The latter informs the party that she bequeaths untold wealth to the young pair and an awful
doom  to Don Pedro, if he doesn't make them happy. The bag is opened, and several quarts of tin money shower down upon the stage till it is quite
glorified  with  the  glitter.  This  entirely softens the stern sire. He consents without a murmur, all join in a joyful chorus, and the curtain
falls upon the lovers kneeling to receive Don Pedro's blessing in attitudes of the most romantic grace.

Tumultuous  applause  followed  but  received  an  unexpected  check,  for the cot bed, on which the dress circle was built, suddenly shut up and
extinguished  the  enthusiastic  audience.  Roderigo and Don Pedro flew to the rescue, and all were taken out unhurt, though many were speechless
with  laughter.  The  excitement  had  hardly  subsided  when  Hannah appeared, with "Mrs. March's compliments, and would the ladies walk down to
supper."

This was a surprise even to the actors, and when they saw the table, they looked at one another in rapturous amazement. It was like Marmee to get
up  a  little  treat  for  them, but anything so fine as this was unheard of since the departed days of plenty. There was ice cream, actually two
dishes of it, pink and white, and cake and fruit and distracting french bonbons and, in the middle of the table, four great bouquets of hot house
flowers.

It quite took their breath away, and they stared first at the table and then at their mother, who looked as if she enjoyed it immensely.

"Is it fairies?" asked Amy.

"Santa Claus," said Beth.

"Mother did it." And Meg smiled her sweetest, in spite of her gray beard and white eyebrows.

"Aunt March had a good fit and sent the supper," cried Jo, with a sudden inspiration.

"All wrong. Old Mr. Laurence sent it," replied Mrs. March.

"The Laurence boy's grandfather! What in the world put such a thing into his head? We don't know him!" exclaimed Meg.

"Hannah  told  one of his servants about your breakfast party. He is an odd old gentleman, but that pleased him. He knew my father years ago, and
he  sent  me a polite note this afternoon, saying he hoped I would allow him to express his friendly feeling toward my children by sending them a
few trifles in honor of the day. I could not refuse, and so you have a little feast at night to make up for the bread-and-milk breakfast."

"That boy put it into his head, I know he did! He's a capital fellow, and I wish we could get acquainted. He looks as if he'd like to know us but
he's bashful, and Meg is so prim she won't let me speak to him when we pass," said Jo, as the plates went round, and the ice began to melt out of
sight, with ohs and ahs of satisfaction.

"You  mean  the  people who live in the big house next door, don't you?" asked one of the girls. "My mother knows old Mr. Laurence, but says he's
very  proud  and doesn't like to mix with his neighbors. He keeps his grandson shut up, when he isn't riding or walking with his tutor, and makes
him study very hard. We invited him to our party, but he didn't come. Mother says he's very nice, though he never speaks to us girls."

"Our  cat ran away once, and he brought her back, and we talked over the fence, and were getting on capitally, all about cricket, and so on, when
he saw Meg coming, and walked off. I mean to know him some day, for he needs fun, I'm sure he does," said Jo decidedly.

"I  like  his  manners, and he looks like a little gentleman, so I've no objection to your knowing him, if a proper opportunity comes. He brought
the flowers himself, and I should have asked him in, if I had been sure what was going on upstairs. He looked so wistful as he went away, hearing
the frolic and evidently having none of his own."

"It's  a  mercy  you didn't, Mother!" laughed Jo, looking at her boots. "But we'll have another play sometime that he can see. Perhaps he'll help
act. Wouldn't that be jolly?"

"I never had such a fine bouquet before! How pretty it is!" And Meg examined her flowers with great interest.

"They are lovely. But Beth's roses are sweeter to me," said Mrs. March, smelling the half-dead posy in her belt.

Beth  nestled  up  to her, and whispered softly, "I wish I could send my bunch to Father. I'm afraid he isn't having such a merry Christmas as we
are."



CHAPTER THREE

THE LAURENCE BOY

"Jo! Jo! Where are you?" cried Meg at the foot of the garret stairs.

"Here!"  answered a husky voice from above, and, running up, Meg found her sister eating apples and crying over the Heir of Redclyffe, wrapped up
in  a  comforter  on  an old three-legged sofa by the sunny window. This was Jo's favorite refuge, and here she loved to retire with half a dozen
russets  and  a  nice  book,  to  enjoy the quiet and the society of a pet rat who lived near by and didn't mind her a particle. As Meg appeared,
Scrabble whisked into his hole. Jo shook the tears off her cheeks and waited to hear the news.

"Such  fun!  Only  see!  A  regular  note  of  invitation  from  Mrs. Gardiner for tomorrow night!" cried Meg, waving the precious paper and then
proceeding to read it with girlish delight.

"'Mrs.  Gardiner  would  be  happy to see Miss March and Miss Josephine at a little dance on New Year's Eve.' Marmee is willing we should go, now
what shall we wear?"

"What's the use of asking that, when you know we shall wear our poplins, because we haven't got anything else?" answered Jo with her mouth full.

"If I only had a silk!" sighed Meg. "Mother says I may when I'm eighteen perhaps, but two years is an everlasting time to wait."

"I'm sure our pops look like silk, and they are nice enough for us. Yours is as good as new, but I forgot the burn and the tear in mine. Whatever
shall I do? The burn shows badly, and I can't take any out."

"You  must  sit still all you can and keep your back out of sight. The front is all right. I shall have a new ribbon for my hair, and Marmee will
lend me her little pearl pin, and my new slippers are lovely, and my gloves will do, though they aren't as nice as I'd like."

"Mine  are  spoiled  with  lemonade, and I can't get any new ones, so I shall have to go without," said Jo, who never troubled herself much about
dress.

"You  must  have gloves, or I won't go," cried Meg decidedly. "Gloves are more important than anything else. You can't dance without them, and if
you don't I should be so mortified."

"Then I'll stay still. I don't care much for company dancing. It's no fun to go sailing round. I like to fly about and cut capers."

"You  can't  ask Mother for new ones, they are so expensive, and you are so careless. She said when you spoiled the others that she shouldn't get
you any more this winter. Can't you make them do?"

"I can hold them crumpled up in my hand, so no one will know how stained they are. That's all I can do. No! I'll tell you how we can manage, each
wear one good one and carry a bad one. Don't you see?"

"Your hands are bigger than mine, and you will stretch my glove dreadfully," began Meg, whose gloves were a tender point with her.

"Then I'll go without. I don't care what people say!" cried Jo, taking up her book.

"You  may  have it, you may! Only don't stain it, and do behave nicely. Don't put your hands behind you, or stare, or say 'Christopher Columbus!'
will you?"

"Don't  worry  about  me. I'll be as prim as I can and not get into any scrapes, if I can help it. Now go and answer your note, and let me finish
this splendid story."

So  Meg  went  away  to 'accept with thanks', look over her dress, and sing blithely as she did up her one real lace frill, while Jo finished her
story, her four apples, and had a game of romps with Scrabble.

On  New  Year's Eve the parlor was deserted, for the two younger girls played dressing maids and the two elder were absorbed in the all-important
business  of  'getting ready for the party'. Simple as the toilets were, there was a great deal of running up and down, laughing and talking, and
at  one time a strong smell of burned hair pervaded the house. Meg wanted a few curls about her face, and Jo undertook to pinch the papered locks
with a pair of hot tongs.

"Ought they to smoke like that?" asked Beth from her perch on the bed.

"It's the dampness drying," replied Jo.

"What a queer smell! It's like burned feathers," observed Amy, smoothing her own pretty curls with a superior air.

"There, now I'll take off the papers and you'll see a cloud of little ringlets," said Jo, putting down the tongs.

She  did  take  off the papers, but no cloud of ringlets appeared, for the hair came with the papers, and the horrified hairdresser laid a row of
little scorched bundles on the bureau before her victim.

"Oh,  oh,  oh!  What have you done? I'm spoiled! I can't go! My hair, oh, my hair!" wailed Meg, looking with despair at the uneven frizzle on her
forehead.

"Just  my  luck!  You  shouldn't  have asked me to do it. I always spoil everything. I'm so sorry, but the tongs were too hot, and so I've made a
mess," groaned poor Jo, regarding the little black pancakes with tears of regret.

"It  isn't  spoiled.  Just  frizzle it, and tie your ribbon so the ends come on your forehead a bit, and it will look like the last fashion. I've
seen many girls do it so," said Amy consolingly.

"Serves me right for trying to be fine. I wish I'd let my hair alone," cried Meg petulantly.

"So do I, it was so smooth and pretty. But it will soon grow out again," said Beth, coming to kiss and comfort the shorn sheep.

After  various  lesser mishaps, Meg was finished at last, and by the united exertions of the entire family Jo's hair was got up and her dress on.
They  looked very well in their simple suits, Meg's in silvery drab, with a blue velvet snood, lace frills, and the pearl pin. Jo in maroon, with
a  stiff,  gentlemanly  linen  collar,  and a white chrysanthemum or two for her only ornament. Each put on one nice light glove, and carried one
soiled  one,  and  all pronounced the effect "quite easy and fine". Meg's high-heeled slippers were very tight and hurt her, though she would not
own it, and Jo's nineteen hairpins all seemed stuck straight into her head, which was not exactly comfortable, but, dear me, let us be elegant or
die.

"Have  a good time, dearies!" said Mrs. March, as the sisters went daintily down the walk. "Don't eat much supper, and come away at eleven when I
send Hannah for you." As the gate clashed behind them, a voice cried from a window . . .

"Girls, girls! Have you you both got nice pocket handkerchiefs?"

"Yes,  yes,  spandy  nice, and Meg has cologne on hers," cried Jo, adding with a laugh as they went on, "I do believe Marmee would ask that if we
were all running away from an earthquake."

"It  is  one of her aristocratic tastes, and quite proper, for a real lady is always known by neat boots, gloves, and handkerchief," replied Meg,
who had a good many little 'aristocratic tastes' of her own.

"Now  don't  forget to keep the bad breadth out of sight, Jo. Is my sash right? And does my hair look very bad?" said Meg, as she turned from the
glass in Mrs. Gardiner's dressing room after a prolonged prink.

"I  know I shall forget. If you see me doing anything wrong, just remind me by a wink, will you?" returned Jo, giving her collar a twitch and her
head a hasty brush.

"No, winking isn't ladylike. I'll lift my eyebrows if any thing is wrong, and nod if you are all right. Now hold your shoulder straight, and take
short steps, and don't shake hands if you are introduced to anyone. It isn't the thing."

"How do you learn all the proper ways? I never can. Isn't that music gay?"

Down they went, feeling a trifle timid, for they seldom went to parties, and informal as this little gathering was, it was an event to them. Mrs.
Gardiner,  a  stately  old lady, greeted them kindly and handed them over to the eldest of her six daughters. Meg knew Sallie and was at her ease
very  soon, but Jo, who didn't care much for girls or girlish gossip, stood about, with her back carefully against the wall, and felt as much out
of  place  as a colt in a flower garden. Half a dozen jovial lads were talking about skates in another part of the room, and she longed to go and
join  them,  for  skating was one of the joys of her life. She telegraphed her wish to Meg, but the eyebrows went up so alarmingly that she dared
not stir. No one came to talk to her, and one by one the group dwindled away till she was left alone. She could not roam about and amuse herself,
for the burned breadth would show, so she stared at people rather forlornly till the dancing began. Meg was asked at once, and the tight slippers
tripped  about  so  briskly  that none would have guessed the pain their wearer suffered smilingly. Jo saw a big red headed youth approaching her
corner,  and  fearing  he  meant to engage her, she slipped into a curtained recess, intending to peep and enjoy herself in peace. Unfortunately,
another bashful person had chosen the same refuge, for, as the curtain fell behind her, she found herself face to face with the 'Laurence boy'.

"Dear me, I didn't know anyone was here!" stammered Jo, preparing to back out as speedily as she had bounced in.

But the boy laughed and said pleasantly, though he looked a little startled, "Don't mind me, stay if you like."

"Shan't I disturb you?"

"Not a bit. I only came here because I don't know many people and felt rather strange at first, you know."

"So did I. Don't go away, please, unless you'd rather."

The  boy sat down again and looked at his pumps, till Jo said, trying to be polite and easy, "I think I've had the pleasure of seeing you before.
You live near us, don't you?"

"Next  door."  And he looked up and laughed outright, for Jo's prim manner was rather funny when he remembered how they had chatted about cricket
when he brought the cat home.

That put Jo at her ease and she laughed too, as she said, in her heartiest way, "We did have such a good time over your nice Christmas present."

"Grandpa sent it."

"But you put it into his head, didn't you, now?"

"How is your cat, Miss March?" asked the boy, trying to look sober while his black eyes shone with fun.

"Nicely, thank you, Mr. Laurence. But I am not Miss March, I'm only Jo," returned the young lady.

"I'm not Mr. Laurence, I'm only Laurie."

"Laurie Laurence, what an odd name."

"My first name is Theodore, but I don't like it, for the fellows called me Dora, so I made them say Laurie instead."

"I hate my name, too, so sentimental! I wish every one would say Jo instead of Josephine. How did you make the boys stop calling you Dora?"

"I thrashed 'em."

"I can't thrash Aunt March, so I suppose I shall have to bear it." And Jo resigned herself with a sigh.

"Don't you like to dance, Miss Jo?" asked Laurie, looking as if he thought the name suited her.

"I  like  it  well enough if there is plenty of room, and everyone is lively. In a place like this I'm sure to upset something, tread on people's
toes, or do something dreadful, so I keep out of mischief and let Meg sail about. Don't you dance?"

"Sometimes. You see I've been abroad a good many years, and haven't been into company enough yet to know how you do things here."

"Abroad!" cried Jo. "Oh, tell me about it! I love dearly to hear people describe their travels."

Laurie didn't seem to know where to begin, but Jo's eager questions soon set him going, and he told her how he had been at school in Vevay, where
the boys never wore hats and had a fleet of boats on the lake, and for holiday fun went on walking trips about Switzerland with their teachers.

"Don't I wish I'd been there!" cried Jo. "Did you go to Paris?"

"We spent last winter there."

"Can you talk French?"

"We were not allowed to speak anything else at Vevay."

"Do say some! I can read it, but can't pronounce."

"Quel nom a cette jeune demoiselle en les pantoufles jolis?"

"How nicely you do it! Let me see . . . you said, 'Who is the young lady in the pretty slippers', didn't you?"

"Oui, mademoiselle."

"It's my sister Margaret, and you knew it was! Do you think she is pretty?"

"Yes, she makes me think of the German girls, she looks so fresh and quiet, and dances like a lady."

Jo quite glowed with pleasure at this boyish praise of her sister, and stored it up to repeat to Meg. Both peeped and critisized and chatted till
they  felt  like  old acquaintances. Laurie's bashfulness soon wore off, for Jo's gentlemanly demeanor amused and set him at his ease, and Jo was
her  merry self again, because her dress was forgotten and nobody lifted their eyebrows at her. She liked the 'Laurence boy' better than ever and
took  several  good  looks  at  him,  so that she might describe him to the girls, for they had no brothers, very few male cousins, and boys were
almost unknown creatures to them.

"Curly  black  hair,  brown  skin, big black eyes, handsome nose, fine teeth, small hands and feet, taller than I am, very polite, for a boy, and
altogether jolly. Wonder how old he is?"

It was on the tip of Jo's tongue to ask, but she checked herself in time and, with unusual tact, tried to find out in a round-about way.

"I  suppose  you  are  going  to  college  soon?  I see you pegging away at your books, no, I mean studying hard." And Jo blushed at the dreadful
'pegging' which had escaped her.

Laurie smiled but didn't seem shocked, and answered with a shrug. "Not for a year or two. I won't go before seventeen, anyway."

"Aren't you but fifteen?" asked Jo, looking at the tall lad, whom she had imagined seventeen already.

"Sixteen, next month."

"How I wish I was going to college! You don't look as if you liked it."

"I hate it! Nothing but grinding or skylarking. And I don't like the way fellows do either, in this country."

"What do you like?"

"To live in Italy, and to enjoy myself in my own way."

Jo  wanted  very  much  to ask what his own way was, but his black brows looked rather threatening as he knit them, so she changed the subject by
saying, as her foot kept time, "That's a splendid polka! Why don't you go and try it?"

"If you will come too," he answered, with a gallant little bow.

"I can't, for I told Meg I wouldn't, because . . ." There Jo stopped, and looked undecided whether to tell or to laugh.

"Because, what?"

"You won't tell?"

"Never!"

"Well, I have a bad trick of standing before the fire, and so I burn my frocks, and I scorched this one, and though it's nicely mended, it shows,
and Meg told me to keep still so no one would see it. You may laugh, if you want to. It is funny, I know."

But Laurie didn't laugh. He only looked down a minute, and the expression of his face puzzled Jo when he said very gently, "Never mind that. I'll
tell you how we can manage. There's a long hall out there, and we can dance grandly, and no one will see us. Please come."

Jo  thanked  him and gladly went, wishing she had two neat gloves when she saw the nice, pearl-colored ones her partner wore. The hall was empty,
and  they had a grand polka, for Laurie danced well, and taught her the German step, which delighted Jo, being full of swing and spring. When the
music  stopped,  they sat down on the stairs to get their breath, and Laurie was in the midst of an account of a students' festival at Heidelberg
when Meg appeared in search of her sister. She beckoned, and Jo reluctantly followed her into a side room, where she found her on a sofa, holding
her foot, and looking pale.

"I've  sprained  my  ankle. That stupid high heel turned and gave me a sad wrench. It aches so, I can hardly stand, and I don't know how I'm ever
going to get home," she said, rocking to and fro in pain.

"I  knew you'd hurt your feet with those silly shoes. I'm sorry. But I don't see what you can do, except get a carriage, or stay here all night,"
answered Jo, softly rubbing the poor ankle as she spoke.

"I  can't have a carriage without its costing ever so much. I dare say I can't get one at all, for most people come in their own, and it's a long
way to the stable, and no one to send."

"I'll go."

"No,  indeed! It's past nine, and dark as Egypt. I can't stop here, for the house is full. Sallie has some girls staying with her. I'll rest till
Hannah comes, and then do the best I can."

"I'll ask Laurie. He will go," said Jo, looking relieved as the idea occurred to her.

"Mercy,  no! Don't ask or tell anyone. Get me my rubbers, and put these slippers with our things. I can't dance anymore, but as soon as supper is
over, watch for Hannah and tell me the minute she comes."

"They are going out to supper now. I'll stay with you. I'd rather."

"No, dear, run along, and bring me some coffee. I'm so tired I can't stir."

So  Meg  reclined, with rubbers well hidden, and Jo went blundering away to the dining room, which she found after going into a china closet, and
opening  the  door  of a room where old Mr. Gardiner was taking a little private refreshment. Making a dart at the table, she secured the coffee,
which she immediately spilled, thereby making the front of her dress as bad as the back.

"Oh, dear, what a blunderbuss I am!" exclaimed Jo, finishing Meg's glove by scrubbing her gown with it.

"Can I help you?" said a friendly voice. And there was Laurie, with a full cup in one hand and a plate of ice in the other.

"I  was  trying to get something for Meg, who is very tired, and someone shook me, and here I am in a nice state," answered Jo, glancing dismally
from the stained skirt to the coffee-colored glove.

"Too bad! I was looking for someone to give this to. May I take it to your sister?"

"Oh, thank you! I'll show you where she is. I don't offer to take it myself, for I should only get into another scrape if I did."

Jo  led  the  way, and as if used to waiting on ladies, Laurie drew up a little table, brought a second installment of coffee and ice for Jo, and
was  so  obliging that even particular Meg pronounced him a 'nice boy'. They had a merry time over the bonbons and mottoes, and were in the midst
of a quiet game of _Buzz_, with two or three other young people who had strayed in, when Hannah appeared. Meg forgot her foot and rose so quickly
that she was forced to catch hold of Jo, with an exclamation of pain.

"Hush!  Don't  say  anything," she whispered, adding aloud, "It's nothing. I turned my foot a little, that's all," and limped upstairs to put her
things on.

Hannah  scolded,  Meg  cried,  and  Jo  was at her wits' end, till she decided to take things into her own hands. Slipping out, she ran down and,
finding  a  servant,  asked  if  he could get her a carriage. It happened to be a hired waiter who knew nothing about the neighborhood and Jo was
looking  round for help when Laurie, who had heard what she said, came up and offered his grandfather's carriage, which had just come for him, he
said.

"It's so early! You can't mean to go yet?" began Jo, looking relieved but hesitating to accept the offer.

"I always go early, I do, truly! Please let me take you home. It's all on my way, you know, and it rains, they say."

That  settled it, and telling him of Meg's mishap, Jo gratefully accepted and rushed up to bring down the rest of the party. Hannah hated rain as
much as a cat does so she made no trouble, and they rolled away in the luxurious close carriage, feeling very festive and elegant. Laurie went on
the box so Meg could keep her foot up, and the girls talked over their party in freedom.

"I had a capital time. Did you?" asked Jo, rumpling up her hair, and making herself comfortable.

"Yes, till I hurt myself. Sallie's friend, Annie Moffat, took a fancy to me, and asked me to come and spend a week with her when Sallie does. She
is  going  in  the  spring  when the opera comes, and it will be perfectly splendid, if Mother only lets me go," answered Meg, cheering up at the
thought.

"I saw you dancing with the red headed man I ran away from. Was he nice?"

"Oh, very! His hair is auburn, not red, and he was very polite, and I had a delicious redowa with him."

"He looked like a grasshopper in a fit when he did the new step. Laurie and I couldn't help laughing. Did you hear us?"

"No, but it was very rude. What were you about all that time, hidden away there?"

Jo  told  her  adventures,  and  by  the  time she had finished they were at home. With many thanks, they said good night and crept in, hoping to
disturb no one, but the instant their door creaked, two little nightcaps bobbed up, and two sleepy but eager voices cried out . . .

"Tell about the party! Tell about the party!"

With  what  Meg  called  'a great want of manners' Jo had saved some bonbons for the little girls, and they soon subsided, after hearing the most
thrilling events of the evening.

"I  declare,  it  really seems like being a fine young lady, to come home from the party in a carriage and sit in my dressing gown with a maid to
wait on me," said Meg, as Jo bound up her foot with arnica and brushed her hair.

"I  don't  believe  fine  young ladies enjoy themselves a bit more than we do, in spite of our burned hair, old gowns, one glove apiece and tight
slippers that sprain our ankles when we are silly enough to wear them." And I think Jo was quite right.



CHAPTER FOUR

BURDENS

"Oh,  dear,  how  hard  it does seem to take up our packs and go on," sighed Meg the morning after the party, for now the holidays were over, the
week of merrymaking did not fit her for going on easily with the task she never liked.

"I wish it was Christmas or New Year's all the time. Wouldn't it be fun?" answered Jo, yawning dismally.

"We  shouldn't  enjoy  ourselves  half so much as we do now. But it does seem so nice to have little suppers and bouquets, and go to parties, and
drive  home,  and  read  and  rest,  and  not  work. It's like other people, you know, and I always envy girls who do such things, I'm so fond of
luxury," said Meg, trying to decide which of two shabby gowns was the least shabby.

"Well, we can't have it, so don't let us grumble but shoulder our bundles and trudge along as cheerfully as Marmee does. I'm sure Aunt March is a
regular  Old  Man of the Sea to me, but I suppose when I've learned to carry her without complaining, she will tumble off, or get so light that I
shan't mind her."

This  idea  tickled  Jo's fancy and put her in good spirits, but Meg didn't brighten, for her burden, consisting of four spoiled children, seemed
heavier  than  ever.  She had not heart enough even to make herself pretty as usual by putting on a blue neck ribbon and dressing her hair in the
most becoming way.

"Where's  the  use  of  looking  nice,  when  no  one sees me but those cross midgets, and no one cares whether I'm pretty or not?" she muttered,
shutting  her drawer with a jerk. "I shall have to toil and moil all my days, with only little bits of fun now and then, and get old and ugly and
sour, because I'm poor and can't enjoy my life as other girls do. It's a shame!"

So  Meg  went  down,  wearing an injured look, and wasn't at all agreeable at breakfast time. Everyone seemed rather out of sorts and inclined to
croak.

Beth  had a headache and lay on the sofa, trying to comfort herself with the cat and three kittens. Amy was fretting because her lessons were not
learned, and she couldn't find her rubbers. Jo would whistle and make a great racket getting ready.

Mrs. March was very busy trying to finish a letter, which must go at once, and Hannah had the grumps, for being up late didn't suit her.

"There  never  was  such a cross family!" cried Jo, losing her temper when she had upset an inkstand, broken both boot lacings, and sat down upon
her hat.

"You're the crossest person in it!" returned Amy, washing out the sum that was all wrong with the tears that had fallen on her slate.

"Beth, if you don't keep these horrid cats down cellar I'll have them drowned," exclaimed Meg angrily as she tried to get rid of the kitten which
had scrambled up her back and stuck like a burr just out of reach.

Jo laughed, Meg scolded, Beth implored, and Amy wailed because she couldn't remember how much nine times twelve was.

"Girls,  girls,  do  be  quiet one minute! I must get this off by the early mail, and you drive me distracted with your worry," cried Mrs. March,
crossing out the third spoiled sentence in her letter.

There was a momentary lull, broken by Hannah, who stalked in, laid two hot turnovers on the table, and stalked out again. These turnovers were an
institution, and the girls called them 'muffs', for they had no others and found the hot pies very comforting to their hands on cold mornings.

Hannah  never forgot to make them, no matter how busy or grumpy she might be, for the walk was long and bleak. The poor things got no other lunch
and were seldom home before two.

"Cuddle  your  cats and get over your headache, Bethy. Goodbye, Marmee. We are a set of rascals this morning, but we'll come home regular angels.
Now then, Meg!" And Jo tramped away, feeling that the pilgrims were not setting out as they ought to do.

They always looked back before turning the corner, for their mother was always at the window to nod and smile, and wave her hand to them. Somehow
it seemed as if they couldn't have got through the day without that, for whatever their mood might be, the last glimpse of that motherly face was
sure to affect them like sunshine.

"If  Marmee shook her fist instead of kissing her hand to us, it would serve us right, for more ungrateful wretches than we are were never seen,"
cried Jo, taking a remorseful satisfaction in the snowy walk and bitter wind.

"Don't use such dreadful expressions," replied Meg from the depths of the veil in which she had shrouded herself like a nun sick of the world.

"I  like  good  strong  words  that  mean  something,"  replied  Jo,  catching  her hat as it took a leap off her head preparatory to flying away
altogether.

"Call yourself any names you like, but I am neither a rascal nor a wretch and I don't choose to be called so."

"You're  a blighted being, and decidedly cross today because you can't sit in the lap of luxury all the time. Poor dear, just wait till I make my
fortune, and you shall revel in carriages and ice cream and high-heeled slippers, and posies, and red-headed boys to dance with."

"How ridiculous you are, Jo!" But Meg laughed at the nonsense and felt better in spite of herself.

"Lucky  for  you I am, for if I put on crushed airs and tried to be dismal, as you do, we should be in a nice state. Thank goodness, I can always
find something funny to keep me up. Don't croak any more, but come home jolly, there's a dear."

Jo  gave  her  sister  an  encouraging  pat  on the shoulder as they parted for the day, each going a different way, each hugging her little warm
turnover, and each trying to be cheerful in spite of wintry weather, hard work, and the unsatisfied desires of pleasure-loving youth.

When  Mr. March lost his property in trying to help an unfortunate friend, the two oldest girls begged to be allowed to do something toward their
own  support,  at  least. Believing that they could not begin too early to cultivate energy, industry, and independence, their parents consented,
and both fell to work with the hearty good will which in spite of all obstacles is sure to succeed at last.

Margaret found a place as nursery governess and felt rich with her small salary. As she said, she was 'fond of luxury', and her chief trouble was
poverty.  She  found it harder to bear than the others because she could remember a time when home was beautiful, life full of ease and pleasure,
and  want  of  any  kind unknown. She tried not to be envious or discontented, but it was very natural that the young girl should long for pretty
things,  gay  friends,  accomplishments, and a happy life. At the Kings' she daily saw all she wanted, for the children's older sisters were just
out,  and  Meg caught frequent glimpses of dainty ball dresses and bouquets, heard lively gossip about theaters, concerts, sleighing parties, and
merrymakings of all kinds, and saw money lavished on trifles which would have been so precious to her. Poor Meg seldom complained, but a sense of
injustice  made  her feel bitter toward everyone sometimes, for she had not yet learned to know how rich she was in the blessings which alone can
make life happy.

Jo happened to suit Aunt March, who was lame and needed an active person to wait upon her. The childless old lady had offered to adopt one of the
girls  when the troubles came, and was much offended because her offer was declined. Other friends told the Marches that they had lost all chance
of being remembered in the rich old lady's will, but the unworldly Marches only said . . .

"We can't give up our girls for a dozen fortunes. Rich or poor, we will keep together and be happy in one another."

The  old  lady  wouldn't speak to them for a time, but happening to meet Jo at a friend's, something in her comical face and blunt manners struck
the  old lady's fancy, and she proposed to take her for a companion. This did not suit Jo at all, but she accepted the place since nothing better
appeared  and,  to every one's surprise, got on remarkably well with her irascible relative. There was an occasional tempest, and once Jo marched
home, declaring she couldn't bear it longer, but Aunt March always cleared up quickly, and sent for her to come back again with such urgency that
she could not refuse, for in her heart she rather liked the peppery old lady.

I  suspect  that  the real attraction was a large library of fine books, which was left to dust and spiders since Uncle March died. Jo remembered
the  kind  old gentleman, who used to let her build railroads and bridges with his big dictionaries, tell her stories about queer pictures in his
Latin  books,  and buy her cards of gingerbread whenever he met her in the street. The dim, dusty room, with the busts staring down from the tall
bookcases,  the  cozy  chairs, the globes, and best of all, the wilderness of books in which she could wander where she liked, made the library a
region of bliss to her.

The  moment Aunt March took her nap, or was busy with company, Jo hurried to this quiet place, and curling herself up in the easy chair, devoured
poetry,  romance,  history,  travels, and pictures like a regular bookworm. But, like all happiness, it did not last long, for as sure as she had
just  reached the heart of the story, the sweetest verse of a song, or the most perilous adventure of her traveler, a shrill voice called, "Josy-
phine! Josy-phine!" and she had to leave her paradise to wind yarn, wash the poodle, or read Belsham's Essays by the hour together.

Jo's  ambition was to do something very splendid. What it was, she had no idea as yet, but left it for time to tell her, and meanwhile, found her
greatest  affliction  in  the  fact that she couldn't read, run, and ride as much as she liked. A quick temper, sharp tongue, and restless spirit
were  always  getting  her  into  scrapes,  and  her life was a series of ups and downs, which were both comic and pathetic. But the training she
received at Aunt March's was just what she needed, and the thought that she was doing something to support herself made her happy in spite of the
perpetual "Josy-phine!"

Beth  was too bashful to go to school. It had been tried, but she suffered so much that it was given up, and she did her lessons at home with her
father.  Even  when he went away, and her mother was called to devote her skill and energy to Soldiers' Aid Societies, Beth went faithfully on by
herself  and  did  the  best  she could. She was a housewifely little creature, and helped Hannah keep home neat and comfortable for the workers,
never  thinking  of  any reward but to be loved. Long, quiet days she spent, not lonely nor idle, for her little world was peopled with imaginary
friends,  and  she  was by nature a busy bee. There were six dolls to be taken up and dressed every morning, for Beth was a child still and loved
her  pets as well as ever. Not one whole or handsome one among them, all were outcasts till Beth took them in, for when her sisters outgrew these
idols,  they passed to her because Amy would have nothing old or ugly. Beth cherished them all the more tenderly for that very reason, and set up
a  hospital  for  infirm  dolls.  No pins were ever stuck into their cotton vitals, no harsh words or blows were ever given them, no neglect ever
saddened  the  heart  of  the most repulsive, but all were fed and clothed, nursed and caressed with an affection which never failed. One forlorn
fragment  of dollanity had belonged to Jo and, having led a tempestuous life, was left a wreck in the rag bag, from which dreary poorhouse it was
rescued  by  Beth and taken to her refuge. Having no top to its head, she tied on a neat little cap, and as both arms and legs were gone, she hid
these  deficiencies  by  folding it in a blanket and devoting her best bed to this chronic invalid. If anyone had known the care lavished on that
dolly,  I  think  it  would  have  touched their hearts, even while they laughed. She brought it bits of bouquets, she read to it, took it out to
breathe  fresh air, hidden under her coat, she sang it lullabies and never went to bed without kissing its dirty face and whispering tenderly, "I
hope you'll have a good night, my poor dear."

Beth  had  her  troubles  as  well as the others, and not being an angel but a very human little girl, she often 'wept a little weep' as Jo said,
because she couldn't take music lessons and have a fine piano. She loved music so dearly, tried so hard to learn, and practiced away so patiently
at  the  jingling  old instrument, that it did seem as if someone (not to hint Aunt March) ought to help her. Nobody did, however, and nobody saw
Beth  wipe  the  tears off the yellow keys, that wouldn't keep in tune, when she was all alone. She sang like a little lark about her work, never
was too tired for Marmee and the girls, and day after day said hopefully to herself, "I know I'll get my music some time, if I'm good."

There  are  many  Beths  in  the  world,  shy and quiet, sitting in corners till needed, and living for others so cheerfully that no one sees the
sacrifices till the little cricket on the hearth stops chirping, and the sweet, sunshiny presence vanishes, leaving silence and shadow behind.

If  anybody  had  asked  Amy  what  the  greatest  trial of her life was, she would have answered at once, "My nose." When she was a baby, Jo had
accidently  dropped  her  into  the  coal  hod,  and  Amy  insisted  that the fall had ruined her nose forever. It was not big nor red, like poor
'Petrea's', it was only rather flat, and all the pinching in the world could not give it an aristocratic point. No one minded it but herself, and
it was doing its best to grow, but Amy felt deeply the want of a Grecian nose, and drew whole sheets of handsome ones to console herself.

"Little Raphael," as her sisters called her, had a decided talent for drawing, and was never so happy as when copying flowers, designing fairies,
or  illustrating  stories with queer specimens of art. Her teachers complained that instead of doing her sums she covered her slate with animals,
the blank pages of her atlas were used to copy maps on, and caricatures of the most ludicrous description came fluttering out of all her books at
unlucky  moments.  She  got  through her lessons as well as she could, and managed to escape reprimands by being a model of deportment. She was a
great  favorite with her mates, being good-tempered and possessing the happy art of pleasing without effort. Her little airs and graces were much
admired,  so were her accomplishments, for besides her drawing, she could play twelve tunes, crochet, and read French without mispronouncing more
than  two-thirds  of  the  words. She had a plaintive way of saying, "When Papa was rich we did so-and-so," which was very touching, and her long
words were considered 'perfectly elegant' by the girls.

Amy  was  in a fair way to be spoiled, for everyone petted her, and her small vanities and selfishnesses were growing nicely. One thing, however,
rather  quenched  the  vanities. She had to wear her cousin's clothes. Now Florence's mama hadn't a particle of taste, and Amy suffered deeply at
having  to  wear  a red instead of a blue bonnet, unbecoming gowns, and fussy aprons that did not fit. Everything was good, well made, and little
worn,  but  Amy's  artistic  eyes  were  much  afflicted, especially this winter, when her school dress was a dull purple with yellow dots and no
trimming.

"My  only  comfort,"  she  said  to  Meg, with tears in her eyes, "is that Mother doesn't take tucks in my dresses whenever I'm naughty, as Maria
Parks's  mother does. My dear, it's really dreadful, for sometimes she is so bad her frock is up to her knees, and she can't come to school. When
I think of this deggerredation, I feegorcer I can bear even my flat nose and purple gown with yellow skyrockets on it."

Meg  was  Amy's  confidant  and monitor, and by some strange attraction of opposites Jo was gentle Beth's. To Jo alone did the shy child tell her
thoughts,  and over her big harum-scarum sister Beth unconsciously exercised more influence than anyone in the family. The two older girls were a
great  deal  to one another, but each took one of the younger sisters into her keeping and watched over her in her own way, 'playing mother' they
called it, and put their sisters in the places of discarded dolls with the maternal instinct of little women.

"Has  anybody  got anything to tell? It's been such a dismal day I'm really dying for some amusement," said Meg, as they sat sewing together that
evening.

"I  had  a  queer time with Aunt today, and, as I got the best of it, I'll tell you about it," began Jo, who dearly loved to tell stories. "I was
reading  that  everlasting  Belsham,  and droning away as I always do, for Aunt soon drops off, and then I take out some nice book, and read like
fury  till she wakes up. I actually made myself sleepy, and before she began to nod, I gave such a gape that she asked me what I meant by opening
my mouth wide enough to take the whole book in at once."

"I wish I could, and be done with it," said I, trying not to be saucy.

"Then  she  gave me a long lecture on my sins, and told me to sit and think them over while she just 'lost' herself for a moment. She never finds
herself  very  soon,  so  the  minute her cap began to bob like a top-heavy dahlia, I whipped the _Vicar of Wakefield_ out of my pocket, and read
away, with one eye on him and one on Aunt. I'd just got to where they all tumbled into the water when I forgot and laughed out loud. Aunt woke up
and, being more good-natured after her nap, told me to read a bit and show what frivolous work I preferred to the worthy and instructive Belsham.
I did my very best, and she liked it, though she only said . . .

"'I don't understand what it's all about. Go back and begin it, child.'"

"Back  I went, and made the Primroses as interesting as ever I could. Once I was wicked enough to stop in a thrilling place, and say meekly, 'I'm
afraid it tires you, ma'am. Shan't I stop now?'"

"She  caught up her knitting, which had dropped out of her hands, gave me a sharp look through her specs, and said, in her short way, 'Finish the
chapter, and don't be impertinent, miss'."

"Did she own she liked it?" asked Meg.

"Oh,  bless  you,  no! But she let old Belsham rest, and when I ran back after my gloves this afternoon, there she was, so hard at the Vicar that
she  didn't hear me laugh as I danced a jig in the hall because of the good time coming. What a pleasant life she might have if only she chose! I
don't envy her much, in spite of her money, for after all rich people have about as many worries as poor ones, I think," added Jo.

"That  reminds  me,"  said  Meg,  "that I've got something to tell. It isn't funny, like Jo's story, but I thought about it a good deal as I came
home.  At  the  Kings' today I found everybody in a flurry, and one of the children said that her oldest brother had done something dreadful, and
Papa had sent him away. I heard Mrs. King crying and Mr. King talking very loud, and Grace and Ellen turned away their faces when they passed me,
so I shouldn't see how red and swollen their eyes were. I didn't ask any questions, of course, but I felt so sorry for them and was rather glad I
hadn't any wild brothers to do wicked things and disgrace the family."

"I  think  being disgraced in school is a great deal tryinger than anything bad boys can do," said Amy, shaking her head, as if her experience of
life had been a deep one. "Susie Perkins came to school today with a lovely red carnelian ring. I wanted it dreadfully, and wished I was her with
all  my might. Well, she drew a picture of Mr. Davis, with a monstrous nose and a hump, and the words, 'Young ladies, my eye is upon you!' coming
out of his mouth in a balloon thing. We were laughing over it when all of a sudden his eye was on us, and he ordered Susie to bring up her slate.
She  was parrylized with fright, but she went, and oh, what do you think he did? He took her by the ear--the ear! Just fancy how horrid!--and led
her to the recitation platform, and made her stand there half an hour, holding the slate so everyone could see."

"Didn't the girls laugh at the picture?" asked Jo, who relished the scrape.

"Laugh?  Not  one!  They sat still as mice, and Susie cried quarts, I know she did. I didn't envy her then, for I felt that millions of carnelian
rings wouldn't have made me happy after that. I never, never should have got over such a agonizing mortification." And Amy went on with her work,
in the proud consciousness of virtue and the successful utterance of two long words in a breath.

"I  saw  something  I liked this morning, and I meant to tell it at dinner, but I forgot," said Beth, putting Jo's topsy-turvy basket in order as
she  talked.  "When  I  went  to get some oysters for Hannah, Mr. Laurence was in the fish shop, but he didn't see me, for I kept behind the fish
barrel, and he was busy with Mr. Cutter the fishman. A poor woman came in with a pail and a mop, and asked Mr. Cutter if he would let her do some
scrubbing for a bit of fish, because she hadn't any dinner for her children, and had been disappointed of a day's work. Mr. Cutter was in a hurry
and  said  'No',  rather crossly, so she was going away, looking hungry and sorry, when Mr. Laurence hooked up a big fish with the crooked end of
his cane and held it out to her. She was so glad and surprised she took it right into her arms, and thanked him over and over. He told her to 'go
along  and  cook it', and she hurried off, so happy! Wasn't it good of him? Oh, she did look so funny, hugging the big, slippery fish, and hoping
Mr. Laurence's bed in heaven would be 'aisy'."

When they had laughed at Beth's story, they asked their mother for one, and after a moments thought, she said soberly, "As I sat cutting out blue
flannel  jackets  today at the rooms, I felt very anxious about Father, and thought how lonely and helpless we should be, if anything happened to
him.  It  was  not  a wise thing to do, but I kept on worrying till an old man came in with an order for some clothes. He sat down near me, and I
began to talk to him, for he looked poor and tired and anxious.

"'Have you sons in the army?' I asked, for the note he brought was not to me."

"Yes,  ma'am.  I  had  four,  but  two were killed, one is a prisoner, and I'm going to the other, who is very sick in a Washington hospital.' he
answered quietly."

"'You have done a great deal for your country, sir,' I said, feeling respect now, instead of pity."

"'Not a mite more than I ought, ma'am. I'd go myself, if I was any use. As I ain't, I give my boys, and give 'em free.'"

"He  spoke  so  cheerfully, looked so sincere, and seemed so glad to give his all, that I was ashamed of myself. I'd given one man and thought it
too  much,  while  he gave four without grudging them. I had all my girls to comfort me at home, and his last son was waiting, miles away, to say
good-by  to  him, perhaps! I felt so rich, so happy thinking of my blessings, that I made him a nice bundle, gave him some money, and thanked him
heartily for the lesson he had taught me."

"Tell another story, Mother, one with a moral to it, like this. I like to think about them afterward, if they are real and not too preachy," said
Jo, after a minute's silence.

Mrs. March smiled and began at once, for she had told stories to this little audience for many years, and knew how to please them.

"Once  upon a time, there were four girls, who had enough to eat and drink and wear, a good many comforts and pleasures, kind friends and parents
who loved them dearly, and yet they were not contented." (Here the listeners stole sly looks at one another, and began to sew diligently.) "These
girls  were anxious to be good and made many excellent resolutions, but they did not keep them very well, and were constantly saying, 'If only we
had  this,'  or 'If we could only do that,' quite forgetting how much they already had, and how many things they actually could do. So they asked
an  old  woman  what  spell  they  could  use  to  make  them happy, and she said, 'When you feel discontented, think over your blessings, and be
grateful.'" (Here Jo looked up quickly, as if about to speak, but changed her mind, seeing that the story was not done yet.)

"Being  sensible girls, they decided to try her advice, and soon were surprised to see how well off they were. One discovered that money couldn't
keep  shame  and sorrow out of rich people's houses, another that, though she was poor, she was a great deal happier, with her youth, health, and
good  spirits,  than a certain fretful, feeble old lady who couldn't enjoy her comforts, a third that, disagreeable as it was to help get dinner,
it  was harder still to go begging for it and the fourth, that even carnelian rings were not so valuable as good behavior. So they agreed to stop
complaining,  to  enjoy  the blessings already possessed, and try to deserve them, lest they should be taken away entirely, instead of increased,
and I believe they were never disappointed or sorry that they took the old woman's advice."

"Now, Marmee, that is very cunning of you to turn our own stories against us, and give us a sermon instead of a romance!" cried Meg.

"I like that kind of sermon. It's the sort Father used to tell us," said Beth thoughtfully, putting the needles straight on Jo's cushion.

"I don't complain near as much as the others do, and I shall be more careful than ever now, for I've had warning from Susie's downfall," said Amy
morally.

"We needed that lesson, and we won't forget it. If we do so, you just say to us, as old Chloe did in _Uncle Tom_, 'Tink ob yer marcies, chillen!'
'Tink  ob  yer marcies!'" added Jo, who could not, for the life of her, help getting a morsel of fun out of the little sermon, though she took it
to heart as much as any of them.



CHAPTER FIVE

BEING NEIGHBORLY

"What  in  the  world are you going to do now, Jo?" asked Meg one snowy afternoon, as her sister came tramping through the hall, in rubber boots,
old sack, and hood, with a broom in one hand and a shovel in the other.

"Going out for exercise," answered Jo with a mischievous twinkle in her eyes.

"I should think two long walks this morning would have been enough! It's cold and dull out, and I advise you to stay warm and dry by the fire, as
I do," said Meg with a shiver.

"Never  take  advice!  Can't  keep still all day, and not being a pussycat, I don't like to doze by the fire. I like adventures, and I'm going to
find some."

Meg  went back to toast her feet and read _Ivanhoe_, and Jo began to dig paths with great energy. The snow was light, and with her broom she soon
swept  a  path  all  round  the garden, for Beth to walk in when the sun came out and the invalid dolls needed air. Now, the garden separated the
Marches'  house from that of Mr. Laurence. Both stood in a suburb of the city, which was still countrylike, with groves and lawns, large gardens,
and  quiet  streets. A low hedge parted the two estates. On one side was an old, brown house, looking rather bare and shabby, robbed of the vines
that  in  summer  covered  its walls and the flowers, which then surrounded it. On the other side was a stately stone mansion, plainly betokening
every sort of comfort and luxury, from the big coach house and well-kept grounds to the conservatory and the glimpses of lovely things one caught
between the rich curtains.

Yet  it  seemed  a  lonely,  lifeless  sort of house, for no children frolicked on the lawn, no motherly face ever smiled at the windows, and few
people went in and out, except the old gentleman and his grandson.

To Jo's lively fancy, this fine house seemed a kind of enchanted palace, full of splendors and delights which no one enjoyed. She had long wanted
to behold these hidden glories, and to know the Laurence boy, who looked as if he would like to be known, if he only knew how to begin. Since the
party,  she had been more eager than ever, and had planned many ways of making friends with him, but he had not been seen lately, and Jo began to
think he had gone away, when she one day spied a brown face at an upper window, looking wistfully down into their garden, where Beth and Amy were
snow-balling one another.

"That  boy  is  suffering  for  society  and fun," she said to herself. "His grandpa does not know what's good for him, and keeps him shut up all
alone. He needs a party of jolly boys to play with, or somebody young and lively. I've a great mind to go over and tell the old gentleman so!"

The  idea  amused  Jo,  who liked to do daring things and was always scandalizing Meg by her queer performances. The plan of 'going over' was not
forgotten.  And when the snowy afternoon came, Jo resolved to try what could be done. She saw Mr. Lawrence drive off, and then sallied out to dig
her  way down to the hedge, where she paused and took a survey. All quiet, curtains down at the lower windows, servants out of sight, and nothing
human visible but a curly black head leaning on a thin hand at the upper window.

"There  he  is," thought Jo, "Poor boy! All alone and sick this dismal day. It's a shame! I'll toss up a snowball and make him look out, and then
say a kind word to him."

Up  went a handful of soft snow, and the head turned at once, showing a face which lost its listless look in a minute, as the big eyes brightened
and the mouth began to smile. Jo nodded and laughed, and flourished her broom as she called out . . .

"How do you do? Are you sick?"

Laurie opened the window, and croaked out as hoarsely as a raven . . .

"Better, thank you. I've had a bad cold, and been shut up a week."

"I'm sorry. What do you amuse yourself with?"

"Nothing. It's dull as tombs up here."

"Don't you read?"

"Not much. They won't let me."

"Can't somebody read to you?"

"Grandpa does sometimes, but my books don't interest him, and I hate to ask Brooke all the time."

"Have someone come and see you then."

"There isn't anyone I'd like to see. Boys make such a row, and my head is weak."

"Isn't there some nice girl who'd read and amuse you? Girls are quiet and like to play nurse."

"Don't know any."

"You know us," began Jo, then laughed and stopped.

"So I do! Will you come, please?" cried Laurie.

"I'm not quiet and nice, but I'll come, if Mother will let me. I'll go ask her. Shut the window, like a good boy, and wait till I come."

With that, Jo shouldered her broom and marched into the house, wondering what they would all say to her. Laurie was in a flutter of excitement at
the  idea  of having company, and flew about to get ready, for as Mrs. March said, he was 'a little gentleman', and did honor to the coming guest
by  brushing  his curly pate, putting on a fresh color, and trying to tidy up the room, which in spite of half a dozen servants, was anything but
neat.  Presently  there  came  a  loud  ring,  than  a decided voice, asking for 'Mr. Laurie', and a surprised-looking servant came running up to
announce a young lady.

"All  right,  show her up, it's Miss Jo," said Laurie, going to the door of his little parlor to meet Jo, who appeared, looking rosy and quite at
her ease, with a covered dish in one hand and Beth's three kittens in the other.

"Here  I  am, bag and baggage," she said briskly. "Mother sent her love, and was glad if I could do anything for you. Meg wanted me to bring some
of  her  blanc mange, she makes it very nicely, and Beth thought her cats would be comforting. I knew you'd laugh at them, but I couldn't refuse,
she was so anxious to do something."

It  so  happened  that  Beth's  funny loan was just the thing, for in laughing over the kits, Laurie forgot his bashfulness, and grew sociable at
once.

"That  looks too pretty to eat," he said, smiling with pleasure, as Jo uncovered the dish, and showed the blanc mange, surrounded by a garland of
green leaves, and the scarlet flowers of Amy's pet geranium.

"It  isn't  anything,  only they all felt kindly and wanted to show it. Tell the girl to put it away for your tea. It's so simple you can eat it,
and being soft, it will slip down without hurting your sore throat. What a cozy room this is!"

"It might be if it was kept nice, but the maids are lazy, and I don't know how to make them mind. It worries me though."

"I'll  right it up in two minutes, for it only needs to have the hearth brushed, so--and the things made straight on the mantelpiece, so--and the
books put here, and the bottles there, and your sofa turned from the light, and the pillows plumped up a bit. Now then, you're fixed."

And  so  he was, for, as she laughed and talked, Jo had whisked things into place and given quite a different air to the room. Laurie watched her
in respectful silence, and when she beckoned him to his sofa, he sat down with a sigh of satisfaction, saying gratefully . . .

"How kind you are! Yes, that's what it wanted. Now please take the big chair and let me do something to amuse my company."

"No, I came to amuse you. Shall I read aloud?" and Jo looked affectionately toward some inviting books near by.

"Thank you! I've read all those, and if you don't mind, I'd rather talk," answered Laurie.

"Not a bit. I'll talk all day if you'll only set me going. Beth says I never know when to stop."

"Is Beth the rosy one, who stays at home good deal and sometimes goes out with a little basket?" asked Laurie with interest.

"Yes, that's Beth. She's my girl, and a regular good one she is, too."

"The pretty one is Meg, and the curly-haired one is Amy, I believe?"

"How did you find that out?"

Laurie  colored up, but answered frankly, "Why, you see I often hear you calling to one another, and when I'm alone up here, I can't help looking
over  at  your house, you always seem to be having such good times. I beg your pardon for being so rude, but sometimes you forget to put down the
curtain  at  the window where the flowers are. And when the lamps are lighted, it's like looking at a picture to see the fire, and you all around
the  table  with  your  mother. Her face is right opposite, and it looks so sweet behind the flowers, I can't help watching it. I haven't got any
mother, you know." And Laurie poked the fire to hide a little twitching of the lips that he could not control.

The solitary, hungry look in his eyes went straight to Jo's warm heart. She had been so simply taught that there was no nonsense in her head, and
at fifteen she was as innocent and frank as any child. Laurie was sick and lonely, and feeling how rich she was in home and happiness, she gladly
tried to share it with him. Her face was very friendly and her sharp voice unusually gentle as she said . . .

"We'll  never  draw  that curtain any more, and I give you leave to look as much as you like. I just wish, though, instead of peeping, you'd come
over and see us. Mother is so splendid, she'd do you heaps of good, and Beth would sing to you if I begged her to, and Amy would dance. Meg and I
would make you laugh over our funny stage properties, and we'd have jolly times. Wouldn't your grandpa let you?"

"I  think  he  would, if your mother asked him. He's very kind, though he does not look so, and he lets me do what I like, pretty much, only he's
afraid I might be a bother to strangers," began Laurie, brightening more and more.

"We are not strangers, we are neighbors, and you needn't think you'd be a bother. We want to know you, and I've been trying to do it this ever so
long. We haven't been here a great while, you know, but we have got acquainted with all our neighbors but you."

"You  see,  Grandpa  lives  among his books, and doesn't mind much what happens outside. Mr. Brooke, my tutor, doesn't stay here, you know, and I
have no one to go about with me, so I just stop at home and get on as I can."

"That's  bad. You ought to make an effort and go visiting everywhere you are asked, then you'll have plenty of friends, and pleasant places to go
to. Never mind being bashful. It won't last long if you keep going."

Laurie turned red again, but wasn't offended at being accused of bashfulness, for there was so much good will in Jo it was impossible not to take
her blunt speeches as kindly as they were meant.

"Do you like your school?" asked the boy, changing the subject, after a little pause, during which he stared at the fire and Jo looked about her,
well pleased.

"Don't go to school, I'm a businessman--girl, I mean. I go to wait on my great-aunt, and a dear, cross old soul she is, too," answered Jo.

Laurie  opened  his  mouth  to ask another question, but remembering just in time that it wasn't manners to make too many inquiries into people's
affairs, he shut it again, and looked uncomfortable.

Jo  liked  his good breeding, and didn't mind having a laugh at Aunt March, so she gave him a lively description of the fidgety old lady, her fat
poodle, the parrot that talked Spanish, and the library where she reveled.

Laurie  enjoyed  that  immensely,  and  when  she  told about the prim old gentleman who came once to woo Aunt March, and in the middle of a fine
speech,  how Poll had tweaked his wig off to his great dismay, the boy lay back and laughed till the tears ran down his cheeks, and a maid popped
her head in to see what was the matter.

"Oh! That does me no end of good. Tell on, please," he said, taking his face out of the sofa cushion, red and shining with merriment.

Much  elated  with  her  success,  Jo  did 'tell on', all about their plays and plans, their hopes and fears for Father, and the most interesting
events  of  the  little  world in which the sisters lived. Then they got to talking about books, and to Jo's delight, she found that Laurie loved
them as well as she did, and had read even more than herself.

"If you like them so much, come down and see ours. Grandfather is out, so you needn't be afraid," said Laurie, getting up.

"I'm not afraid of anything," returned Jo, with a toss of the head.

"I don't believe you are!" exclaimed the boy, looking at her with much admiration, though he privately thought she would have good reason to be a
trifle afraid of the old gentleman, if she met him in some of his moods.

The  atmosphere  of the whole house being summerlike, Laurie led the way from room to room, letting Jo stop to examine whatever struck her fancy.
And so, at last they came to the library, where she clapped her hands and pranced, as she always did when especially delighted. It was lined with
books,  and  there  were pictures and statues, and distracting little cabinets full of coins and curiosities, and Sleepy Hollow chairs, and queer
tables, and bronzes, and best of all, a great open fireplace with quaint tiles all round it.

"What  richness!"  sighed  Jo,  sinking  into  the  depth  of  a velour chair and gazing about her with an air of intense satisfaction. "Theodore
Laurence, you ought to be the happiest boy in the world," she added impressively.

"A fellow can't live on books," said Laurie, shaking his head as he perched on a table opposite.

Before he could more, a bell rang, and Jo flew up, exclaiming with alarm, "Mercy me! It's your grandpa!"

"Well, what if it is? You are not afraid of anything, you know," returned the boy, looking wicked.

"I  think I am a little bit afraid of him, but I don't know why I should be. Marmee said I might come, and I don't think you're any the worse for
it," said Jo, composing herself, though she kept her eyes on the door.

"I'm  a  great  deal better for it, and ever so much obliged. I'm only afraid you are very tired of talking to me. It was so pleasant, I couldn't
bear to stop," said Laurie gratefully.

"The doctor to see you, sir," and the maid beckoned as she spoke.

"Would you mind if I left you for a minute? I suppose I must see him," said Laurie.

"Don't mind me. I'm happy as a cricket here," answered Jo.

Laurie  went away, and his guest amused herself in her own way. She was standing before a fine portrait of the old gentleman when the door opened
again,  and  without  turning,  she  said decidedly, "I'm sure now that I shouldn't be afraid of him, for he's got kind eyes, though his mouth is
grim, and he looks as if he had a tremendous will of his own. He isn't as handsome as my grandfather, but I like him."

"Thank you, ma'am," said a gruff voice behind her, and there, to her great dismay, stood old Mr. Laurence.

Poor Jo blushed till she couldn't blush any redder, and her heart began to beat uncomfortably fast as she thought what she had said. For a minute
a  wild  desire  to  run  away possessed her, but that was cowardly, and the girls would laugh at her, so she resolved to stay and get out of the
scrape  as  she could. A second look showed her that the living eyes, under the bushy eyebrows, were kinder even than the painted ones, and there
was  a sly twinkle in them, which lessened her fear a good deal. The gruff voice was gruffer than ever, as the old gentleman said abruptly, after
the dreadful pause, "So you're not afraid of me, hey?"

"Not much, sir."

"And you don't think me as handsome as your grandfather?"

"Not quite, sir."

"And I've got a tremendous will, have I?"

"I only said I thought so."

"But you like me in spite of it?"

"Yes, I do, sir."

That  answer  pleased the old gentleman. He gave a short laugh, shook hands with her, and, putting his finger under her chin, turned up her face,
examined  it  gravely,  and  let  it go, saying with a nod, "You've got your grandfather's spirit, if you haven't his face. He was a fine man, my
dear, but what is better, he was a brave and an honest one, and I was proud to be his friend."

"Thank you, sir," And Jo was quite comfortable after that, for it suited her exactly.

"What have you been doing to this boy of mine, hey?" was the next question, sharply put.

"Only trying to be neighborly, sir." And Jo told how her visit came about.

"You think he needs cheering up a bit, do you?"

"Yes, sir, he seems a little lonely, and young folks would do him good perhaps. We are only girls, but we should be glad to help if we could, for
we don't forget the splendid Christmas present you sent us," said Jo eagerly.

"Tut, tut, tut! That was the boy's affair. How is the poor woman?"

"Doing nicely, sir." And off went Jo, talking very fast, as she told all about the Hummels, in whom her mother had interested richer friends than
they were.

"Just  her father's way of doing good. I shall come and see your mother some fine day. Tell her so. There's the tea bell, we have it early on the
boy's account. Come down and go on being neighborly."

"If you'd like to have me, sir."

"Shouldn't ask you, if I didn't." And Mr. Laurence offered her his arm with old-fashioned courtesy.

"What  would  Meg  say to this?" thought Jo, as she was marched away, while her eyes danced with fun as she imagined herself telling the story at
home.

"Hey!  Why,  what  the  dickens has come to the fellow?" said the old gentleman, as Laurie came running downstairs and brought up with a start of
surprise at the astounding sight of Jo arm in arm with his redoubtable grandfather.

"I didn't know you'd come, sir," he began, as Jo gave him a triumphant little glance.

"That's  evident,  by the way you racket downstairs. Come to your tea, sir, and behave like a gentleman." And having pulled the boy's hair by way
of  a  caress,  Mr.  Laurence  walked  on,  while  Laurie  went through a series of comic evolutions behind their backs, which nearly produced an
explosion of laughter from Jo.

The old gentleman did not say much as he drank his four cups of tea, but he watched the young people, who soon chatted away like old friends, and
the  change  in  his  grandson  did  not  escape him. There was color, light, and life in the boy's face now, vivacity in his manner, and genuine
merriment in his laugh.

"She's  right, the lad is lonely. I'll see what these little girls can do for him," thought Mr. Laurence, as he looked and listened. He liked Jo,
for her odd, blunt ways suited him, and she seemed to understand the boy almost as well as if she had been one herself.

If  the Laurences had been what Jo called 'prim and poky', she would not have got on at all, for such people always made her shy and awkward. But
finding  them  free and easy, she was so herself, and made a good impression. When they rose she proposed to go, but Laurie said he had something
more  to show her, and took her away to the conservatory, which had been lighted for her benefit. It seemed quite fairylike to Jo, as she went up
and  down  the walks, enjoying the blooming walls on either side, the soft light, the damp sweet air, and the wonderful vines and trees that hung
about  her,  while  her new friend cut the finest flowers till his hands were full. Then he tied them up, saying, with the happy look Jo liked to
see, "Please give these to your mother, and tell her I like the medicine she sent me very much."

They  found  Mr.  Laurence  standing  before the fire in the great drawing room, but Jo's attention was entirely absorbed by a grand piano, which
stood open.

"Do you play?" she asked, turning to Laurie with a respectful expression.

"Sometimes," he answered modestly.

"Please do now. I want to hear it, so I can tell Beth."

"Won't you first?"

"Don't know how. Too stupid to learn, but I love music dearly."

So  Laurie  played  and  Jo listened, with her nose luxuriously buried in heliotrope and tea roses. Her respect and regard for the 'Laurence' boy
increased  very  much,  for  he  played  remarkably well and didn't put on any airs. She wished Beth could hear him, but she did not say so, only
praised him till he was quite abashed, and his grandfather came to his rescue.

"That  will  do,  that  will do, young lady. Too many sugarplums are not good for him. His music isn't bad, but I hope he will do as well in more
important things. Going? well, I'm much obliged to you, and I hope you'll come again. My respects to your mother. Good night, Doctor Jo."

He  shook  hands  kindly,  but  looked as if something did not please him. When they got into the hall, Jo asked Laurie if she had said something
amiss. He shook his head.

"No, it was me. He doesn't like to hear me play."

"Why not?"

"I'll tell you some day. John is going home with you, as I can't."

"No need of that. I am not a young lady, and it's only a step. Take care of yourself, won't you?"

"Yes, but you will come again, I hope?"

"If you promise to come and see us after you are well."

"I will."

"Good night, Laurie!"

"Good night, Jo, good night!"

When all the afternoon's adventures had been told, the family felt inclined to go visiting in a body, for each found something very attractive in
the  big  house on the other side of the hedge. Mrs. March wanted to talk of her father with the old man who had not forgotten him, Meg longed to
walk in the conservatory, Beth sighed for the grand piano, and Amy was eager to see the fine pictures and statues.

"Mother, why didn't Mr. Laurence like to have Laurie play?" asked Jo, who was of an inquiring disposition.

"I  am  not  sure, but I think it was because his son, Laurie's father, married an Italian lady, a musician, which displeased the old man, who is
very  proud.  The lady was good and lovely and accomplished, but he did not like her, and never saw his son after he married. They both died when
Laurie was a little child, and then his grandfather took him home. I fancy the boy, who was born in Italy, is not very strong, and the old man is
afraid  of  losing  him,  which  makes him so careful. Laurie comes naturally by his love of music, for he is like his mother, and I dare say his
grandfather  fears that he may want to be a musician. At any rate, his skill reminds him of the woman he did not like, and so he 'glowered' as Jo
said."

"Dear me, how romantic!" exclaimed Meg.

"How silly!" said Jo. "Let him be a musician if he wants to, and not plague his life out sending him to college, when he hates to go."

"That's why he has such handsome black eyes and pretty manners, I suppose. Italians are always nice," said Meg, who was a little sentimental.

"What do you know about his eyes and his manners? You never spoke to him, hardly," cried Jo, who was not sentimental.

"I saw him at the party, and what you tell shows that he knows how to behave. That was a nice little speech about the medicine Mother sent him."

"He meant the blanc mange, I suppose."

"How stupid you are, child! He meant you, of course."

"Did he?" And Jo opened her eyes as if it had never occurred to her before.

"I never saw such a girl! You don't know a compliment when you get it," said Meg, with the air of a young lady who knew all about the matter.

"I  think  they are great nonsense, and I'll thank you not to be silly and spoil my fun. Laurie's a nice boy and I like him, and I won't have any
sentimental stuff about compliments and such rubbish. We'll all be good to him because he hasn't got any mother, and he may come over and see us,
mayn't he, Marmee?"

"Yes, Jo, your little friend is very welcome, and I hope Meg will remember that children should be children as long as they can."

"I don't call myself a child, and I'm not in my teens yet," observed Amy. "What do you say, Beth?"

"I  was thinking about our '_Pilgrim's Progress_'," answered Beth, who had not heard a word. "How we got out of the Slough and through the Wicket
Gate  by  resolving to be good, and up the steep hill by trying, and that maybe the house over there, full of splendid things, is going to be our
Palace Beautiful."

"We have got to get by the lions first," said Jo, as if she rather liked the prospect.


CHAPTER SIX

BETH FINDS THE PALACE BEAUTIFUL

The  big  house  did prove a Palace Beautiful, though it took some time for all to get in, and Beth found it very hard to pass the lions. Old Mr.
Laurence  was  the  biggest  one,  but after he had called, said something funny or kind to each one of the girls, and talked over old times with
their  mother,  nobody felt much afraid of him, except timid Beth. The other lion was the fact that they were poor and Laurie rich, for this made
them  shy  of accepting favors which they could not return. But, after a while, they found that he considered them the benefactors, and could not
do  enough  to show how grateful he was for Mrs. March's motherly welcome, their cheerful society, and the comfort he took in that humble home of
theirs. So they soon forgot their pride and interchanged kindnesses without stopping to think which was the greater.

All  sorts  of  pleasant  things happened about that time, for the new friendship flourished like grass in spring. Every one liked Laurie, and he
privately  informed  his  tutor that "the Marches were regularly splendid girls." With the delightful enthusiasm of youth, they took the solitary
boy  into  their  midst  and  made much of him, and he found something very charming in the innocent companionship of these simple-hearted girls.
Never having known mother or sisters, he was quick to feel the influences they brought about him, and their busy, lively ways made him ashamed of
the  indolent  life  he  led.  He was tired of books, and found people so interesting now that Mr. Brooke was obliged to make very unsatisfactory
reports, for Laurie was always playing truant and running over to the Marches'.

"Never mind, let him take a holiday, and make it up afterward," said the old gentleman. "The good lady next door says he is studying too hard and
needs  young society, amusement, and exercise. I suspect she is right, and that I've been coddling the fellow as if I'd been his grandmother. Let
him  do what he likes, as long as he is happy. He can't get into mischief in that little nunnery over there, and Mrs. March is doing more for him
than we can."

What  good  times they had, to be sure. Such plays and tableaux, such sleigh rides and skating frolics, such pleasant evenings in the old parlor,
and  now  and  then  such  gay little parties at the great house. Meg could walk in the conservatory whenever she liked and revel in bouquets, Jo
browsed  over  the  new  library  voraciously, and convulsed the old gentleman with her criticisms, Amy copied pictures and enjoyed beauty to her
heart's content, and Laurie played 'lord of the manor' in the most delightful style.

But  Beth,  though yearning for the grand piano, could not pluck up courage to go to the 'Mansion of Bliss', as Meg called it. She went once with
Jo,  but  the old gentleman, not being aware of her infirmity, stared at her so hard from under his heavy eyebrows, and said "Hey!" so loud, that
he  frightened her so much her 'feet chattered on the floor', she never told her mother, and she ran away, declaring she would never go there any
more,  not  even  for  the dear piano. No persuasions or enticements could overcome her fear, till, the fact coming to Mr. Laurence's ear in some
mysterious  way,  he set about mending matters. During one of the brief calls he made, he artfully led the conversation to music, and talked away
about  great  singers  whom  he had seen, fine organs he had heard, and told such charming anecdotes that Beth found it impossible to stay in her
distant corner, but crept nearer and nearer, as if fascinated. At the back of his chair she stopped and stood listening, with her great eyes wide
open and her cheeks red with excitement of this unusual performance. Taking no more notice of her than if she had been a fly, Mr. Laurence talked
on about Laurie's lessons and teachers. And presently, as if the idea had just occurred to him, he said to Mrs. March . . .

"The  boy  neglects his music now, and I'm glad of it, for he was getting too fond of it. But the piano suffers for want of use. Wouldn't some of
your girls like to run over, and practice on it now and then, just to keep it in tune, you know, ma'am?"

Beth  took  a  step  forward, and pressed her hands tightly together to keep from clapping them, for this was an irresistible temptation, and the
thought  of  practicing  on  that splendid instrument quite took her breath away. Before Mrs. March could reply, Mr. Laurence went on with an odd
little nod and smile . . .

"They  needn't  see  or speak to anyone, but run in at any time. For I'm shut up in my study at the other end of the house, Laurie is out a great
deal, and the servants are never near the drawing room after nine o'clock."

Here  he  rose,  as  if  going, and Beth made up her mind to speak, for that last arrangement left nothing to be desired. "Please, tell the young
ladies  what  I say, and if they don't care to come, why, never mind." Here a little hand slipped into his, and Beth looked up at him with a face
full of gratitude, as she said, in her earnest yet timid way . . .

"Oh sir, they do care, very very much!"

"Are you the musical girl?" he asked, without any startling "Hey!" as he looked down at her very kindly.

"I'm  Beth.  I  love  it  dearly, and I'll come, if you are quite sure nobody will hear me, and be disturbed," she added, fearing to be rude, and
trembling at her own boldness as she spoke.

"Not a soul, my dear. The house is empty half the day, so come and drum away as much as you like, and I shall be obliged to you."

"How kind you are, sir!"

Beth blushed like a rose under the friendly look he wore, but she was not frightened now, and gave the hand a grateful squeeze because she had no
words  to  thank  him  for the precious gift he had given her. The old gentleman softly stroked the hair off her forehead, and, stooping down, he
kissed her, saying, in a tone few people ever heard. . .

"I had a little girl once, with eyes like these. God bless you, my dear! Good day, madam." And away he went, in a great hurry.

Beth  had  a  rapture  with her mother, and then rushed up to impart the glorious news to her family of invalids, as the girls were not home. How
blithely  she sang that evening, and how they all laughed at her because she woke Amy in the night by playing the piano on her face in her sleep.
Next  day,  having seen both the old and young gentleman out of the house, Beth, after two or three retreats, fairly got in at the side door, and
made  her  way as noiselessly as any mouse to the drawing room where her idol stood. Quite by accident, of course, some pretty, easy music lay on
the  piano,  and  with  trembling fingers and frequent stops to listen and look about, Beth at last touched the great instrument, and straightway
forgot  her  fear,  herself,  and  everything  else  but the unspeakable delight which the music gave her, for it was like the voice of a beloved
friend.

She stayed till Hannah came to take her home to dinner, but she had no appetite, and could only sit and smile upon everyone in a general state of
beatitude.

After  that,  the  little  brown hood slipped through the hedge nearly every day, and the great drawing room was haunted by a tuneful spirit that
came  and went unseen. She never knew that Mr. Laurence opened his study door to hear the old-fashioned airs he liked. She never saw Laurie mount
guard in the hall to warn the servants away. She never suspected that the exercise books and new songs which she found in the rack were put there
for her especial benefit, and when he talked to her about music at home, she only thought how kind he was to tell things that helped her so much.
So  she  enjoyed herself heartily, and found, what isn't always the case, that her granted wish was all she had hoped. Perhaps it was because she
was so grateful for this blessing that a greater was given her. At any rate she deserved both.

"Mother,  I'm going to work Mr. Laurence a pair of slippers. He is so kind to me, I must thank him, and I don't know any other way. Can I do it?"
asked Beth, a few weeks after that eventful call of his.

"Yes,  dear.  It  will please him very much, and be a nice way of thanking him. The girls will help you about them, and I will pay for the making
up," replied Mrs. March, who took peculiar pleasure in granting Beth's requests because she so seldom asked anything for herself.

After  many  serious  discussions  with  Meg and Jo, the pattern was chosen, the materials bought, and the slippers begun. A cluster of grave yet
cheerful pansies on a deeper purple ground was pronounced very appropriate and pretty, and Beth worked away early and late, with occasional lifts
over  hard  parts.  She  was  a nimble little needlewoman, and they were finished before anyone got tired of them. Then she wrote a short, simple
note, and with Laurie's help, got them smuggled onto the study table one morning before the old gentleman was up.

When  this  excitement  was over, Beth waited to see what would happen. All day passed and a part of the next before any acknowledgement arrived,
and  she  was  beginning to fear she had offended her crochety friend. On the afternoon of the second day, she went out to do an errand, and give
poor Joanna, the invalid doll, her daily exercise. As she came up the street, on her return, she saw three, yes, four heads popping in and out of
the parlor windows, and the moment they saw her, several hands were waved, and several joyful voices screamed . . .

"Here's a letter from the old gentleman! Come quick, and read it!"

"Oh,  Beth,  he's sent you . . ." began Amy, gesticulating with unseemly energy, but she got no further, for Jo quenched her by slamming down the
window.

Beth  hurried  on in a flutter of suspense. At the door her sisters seized and bore her to the parlor in a triumphal procession, all pointing and
all  saying  at once, "Look there! Look there!" Beth did look, and turned pale with delight and surprise, for there stood a little cabinet piano,
with a letter lying on the glossy lid, directed like a sign board to "Miss Elizabeth March."

"For me?" gasped Beth, holding onto Jo and feeling as if she should tumble down, it was such an overwhelming thing altogether.

"Yes, all for you, my precious! Isn't it splendid of him? Don't you think he's the dearest old man in the world? Here's the key in the letter. We
didn't open it, but we are dying to know what he says," cried Jo, hugging her sister and offering the note.

"You read it! I can't, I feel so queer! Oh, it is too lovely!" and Beth hid her face in Jo's apron, quite upset by her present.

Jo opened the paper and began to laugh, for the first words she saw were . . .

"Miss March: "Dear Madam--"

"How nice it sounds! I wish someone would write to me so!" said Amy, who thought the old-fashioned address very elegant.

"'I  have had many pairs of slippers in my life, but I never had any that suited me so well as yours,'" continues Jo. "'Heartsease is my favorite
flower,  and  these  will  always remind me of the gentle giver. I like to pay my debts, so I know you will allow 'the old gentleman' to send you
something  which  once  belonged  to  the  little grand daughter he lost. With hearty thanks and best wishes, I remain "'Your grateful friend and
humble servant, 'JAMES LAURENCE'."

"There,  Beth,  that's  an honor to be proud of, I'm sure! Laurie told me how fond Mr. Laurence used to be of the child who died, and how he kept
all  her  little things carefully. Just think, he's given you her piano. That comes of having big blue eyes and loving music," said Jo, trying to
soothe Beth, who trembled and looked more excited than she had ever been before.

"See  the  cunning brackets to hold candles, and the nice green silk, puckered up, with a gold rose in the middle, and the pretty rack and stool,
all complete," added Meg, opening the instrument and displaying its beauties.

"'Your  humble servant, James Laurence'. Only think of his writing that to you. I'll tell the girls. They'll think it's splendid," said Amy, much
impressed by the note.

"Try it, honey. Let's hear the sound of the baby pianny," said Hannah, who always took a share in the family joys and sorrows.

So  Beth tried it, and everyone pronounced it the most remarkable piano ever heard. It had evidently been newly tuned and put in apple-pie order,
but,  perfect  as  it  was,  I  think  the  real  charm lay in the happiest of all happy faces which leaned over it, as Beth lovingly touched the
beautiful black and white keys and pressed the bright pedals.

"You'll have to go and thank him," said Jo, by way of a joke, for the idea of the child's really going never entered her head.

"Yes,  I  mean  to.  I  guess  I'll go now, before I get frightened thinking about it." And, to the utter amazement of the assembled family, Beth
walked deliberately down the garden, through the hedge, and in at the Laurences' door.

"Well,  I  wish  I  may  die if it ain't the queerest thing I ever see! The pianny has turned her head! She'd never have gone in her right mind,"
cried Hannah, staring after her, while the girls were rendered quite speechless by the miracle.

They  would  have been still more amazed if they had seen what Beth did afterward. If you will believe me, she went and knocked at the study door
before  she  gave  herself time to think, and when a gruff voice called out, "come in!" she did go in, right up to Mr. Laurence, who looked quite
taken  aback,  and held out her hand, saying, with only a small quaver in her voice, "I came to thank you, sir, for . . ." But she didn't finish,
for he looked so friendly that she forgot her speech and, only remembering that he had lost the little girl he loved, she put both arms round his
neck and kissed him.

If  the  roof of the house had suddenly flown off, the old gentleman wouldn't have been more astonished. But he liked it. Oh, dear, yes, he liked
it amazingly! And was so touched and pleased by that confiding little kiss that all his crustiness vanished, and he just set her on his knee, and
laid his wrinkled cheek against her rosy one, feeling as if he had got his own little granddaughter back again. Beth ceased to fear him from that
moment,  and  sat  there talking to him as cozily as if she had known him all her life, for love casts out fear, and gratitude can conquer pride.
When she went home, he walked with her to her own gate, shook hands cordially, and touched his hat as he marched back again, looking very stately
and erect, like a handsome, soldierly old gentleman, as he was.

When  the  girls  saw  that performance, Jo began to dance a jig, by way of expressing her satisfaction, Amy nearly fell out of the window in her
surprise, and Meg exclaimed, with up-lifted hands, "Well, I do believe the world is coming to an end."



CHAPTER SEVEN

AMY'S VALLEY OF HUMILIATION

"That boy is a perfect cyclops, isn't he?" said Amy one day, as Laurie clattered by on horseback, with a flourish of his whip as he passed.

"How  dare you say so, when he's got both his eyes? And very handsome ones they are, too," cried Jo, who resented any slighting remarks about her
friend.

"I didn't say anything about his eyes, and I don't see why you need fire up when I admire his riding."

"Oh, my goodness! That little goose means a centaur, and she called him a Cyclops," exclaimed Jo, with a burst of laughter.

"You needn't be so rude, it's only a 'lapse of lingy', as Mr. Davis says," retorted Amy, finishing Jo with her Latin. "I just wish I had a little
of the money Laurie spends on that horse," she added, as if to herself, yet hoping her sisters would hear.

"Why?" asked Meg kindly, for Jo had gone off in another laugh at Amy's second blunder.

"I need it so much. I'm dreadfully in debt, and it won't be my turn to have the rag money for a month."

"In debt, Amy? What do you mean?" And Meg looked sober.

"Why,  I  owe at least a dozen pickled limes, and I can't pay them, you know, till I have money, for Marmee forbade my having anything charged at
the shop."

"Tell  me  all  about it. Are limes the fashion now? It used to be pricking bits of rubber to make balls." And Meg tried to keep her countenance,
Amy looked so grave and important.

"Why,  you  see,  the  girls  are always buying them, and unless you want to be thought mean, you must do it too. It's nothing but limes now, for
everyone  is  sucking them in their desks in schooltime, and trading them off for pencils, bead rings, paper dolls, or something else, at recess.
If  one  girl likes another, she gives her a lime. If she's mad with her, she eats one before her face, and doesn't offer even a suck. They treat
by turns, and I've had ever so many but haven't returned them, and I ought for they are debts of honor, you know."

"How much will pay them off and restore your credit?" asked Meg, taking out her purse.

"A quarter would more than do it, and leave a few cents over for a treat for you. Don't you like limes?"

"Not much. You may have my share. Here's the money. Make it last as long as you can, for it isn't very plenty, you know."

"Oh,  thank  you!  It must be so nice to have pocket money! I'll have a grand feast, for I haven't tasted a lime this week. I felt delicate about
taking any, as I couldn't return them, and I'm actually suffering for one."

Next  day  Amy  was  rather late at school, but could not resist the temptation of displaying, with pardonable pride, a moist brown-paper parcel,
before  she  consigned  it to the inmost recesses of her desk. During the next few minutes the rumor that Amy March had got twenty-four delicious
limes  (she ate one on the way) and was going to treat circulated through her 'set', and the attentions of her friends became quite overwhelming.
Katy  Brown  invited  her to her next party on the spot. Mary Kinglsey insisted on lending her her watch till recess, and Jenny Snow, a satirical
young  lady,  who had basely twitted Amy upon her limeless state, promptly buried the hatchet and offered to furnish answers to certain appalling
sums.  But Amy had not forgotten Miss Snow's cutting remarks about 'some persons whose noses were not too flat to smell other people's limes, and
stuck-up  people  who  were  not  too  proud to ask for them', and she instantly crushed 'that Snow girl's' hopes by the withering telegram, "You
needn't be so polite all of a sudden, for you won't get any."

A  distinguished  personage  happened  to visit the school that morning, and Amy's beautifully drawn maps received praise, which honor to her foe
rankled  in  the  soul  of  Miss Snow, and caused Miss March to assume the airs of a studious young peacock. But, alas, alas! Pride goes before a
fall,  and  the  revengeful  Snow  turned  the tables with disastrous success. No sooner had the guest paid the usual stale compliments and bowed
himself out, than Jenny, under pretense of asking an important question, informed Mr. Davis, the teacher, that Amy March had pickled limes in her
desk.

Now  Mr.  Davis  had declared limes a contraband article, and solemnly vowed to publicly ferrule the first person who was found breaking the law.
This  much-enduring  man  had  succeeded  in  banishing chewing gum after a long and stormy war, had made a bonfire of the confiscated novels and
newspapers,  had  suppressed  a private post office, had forbidden distortions of the face, nicknames, and caricatures, and done all that one man
could  do  to  keep  half a hundred rebellious girls in order. Boys are trying enough to human patience, goodness knows, but girls are infinitely
more so, especially to nervous gentlemen with tyrannical tempers and no more talent for teaching than Dr. Blimber. Mr. Davis knew any quantity of
Greek,  Latin, algebra, and ologies of all sorts so he was called a fine teacher, and manners, morals, feelings, and examples were not considered
of  any  particular  importance. It was a most unfortunate moment for denouncing Amy, and Jenny knew it. Mr. Davis had evidently taken his coffee
too strong that morning, there was an east wind, which always affected his neuralgia, and his pupils had not done him the credit which he felt he
deserved.  Therefore, to use the expressive, if not elegant, language of a schoolgirl, "He was as nervous as a witch and as cross as a bear". The
word  'limes'  was  like fire to powder, his yellow face flushed, and he rapped on his desk with an energy which made Jenny skip to her seat with
unusual rapidity.

"Young ladies, attention, if you please!"

At the stern order the buzz ceased, and fifty pairs of blue, black, gray, and brown eyes were obediently fixed upon his awful countenance.

"Miss March, come to the desk."

Amy rose to comply with outward composure, but a secret fear oppressed her, for the limes weighed upon her conscience.

"Bring with you the limes you have in your desk," was the unexpected command which arrested her before she got out of her seat.

"Don't take all." whispered her neighbor, a young lady of great presence of mind.

Amy  hastily shook out half a dozen and laid the rest down before Mr. Davis, feeling that any man possessing a human heart would relent when that
delicious  perfume  met  his  nose.  Unfortunately,  Mr. Davis particularly detested the odor of the fashionable pickle, and disgust added to his
wrath.

"Is that all?"

"Not quite," stammered Amy.

"Bring the rest immediately."

With a despairing glance at her set, she obeyed.

"You are sure there are no more?"

"I never lie, sir."

"So I see. Now take these disgusting things two by two, and throw them out of the window."

There  was  a  simultaneous  sigh,  which created quite a little gust, as the last hope fled, and the treat was ravished from their longing lips.
Scarlet  with  shame  and anger, Amy went to and fro six dreadful times, and as each doomed couple, looking oh, so plump and juicy, fell from her
reluctant  hands,  a  shout  from  the street completed the anguish of the girls, for it told them that their feast was being exulted over by the
little  Irish  children,  who were their sworn foes. This--this was too much. All flashed indignant or appealing glances at the inexorable Davis,
and one passionate lime lover burst into tears.

As Amy returned from her last trip, Mr. Davis gave a portentous "Hem!" and said, in his most impressive manner . . .

"Young  ladies, you remember what I said to you a week ago. I am sorry this has happened, but I never allow my rules to be infringed, and I never
break my word. Miss March, hold out your hand."

Amy started, and put both hands behind her, turning on him an imploring look which pleaded for her better than the words she could not utter. She
was  rather  a  favorite  with  'old  Davis',  as, of course, he was called, and it's my private belief that he would have broken his word if the
indignation  of  one  irrepressible  young  lady had not found vent in a hiss. That hiss, faint as it was, irritated the irascible gentleman, and
sealed the culprit's fate.

"Your  hand,  Miss  March!" was the only answer her mute appeal received, and too proud to cry or beseech, Amy set her teeth, threw back her head
defiantly, and bore without flinching several tingling blows on her little palm. They were neither many nor heavy, but that made no difference to
her. For the first time in her life she had been struck, and the disgrace, in her eyes, was as deep as if he had knocked her down.

"You will now stand on the platform till recess," said Mr. Davis, resolved to do the thing thoroughly, since he had begun.

That  was  dreadful.  It would have been bad enough to go to her seat, and see the pitying faces of her friends, or the satisfied ones of her few
enemies,  but  to  face  the whole school, with that shame fresh upon her, seemed impossible, and for a second she felt as if she could only drop
down  where  she stood, and break her heart with crying. A bitter sense of wrong and the thought of Jenny Snow helped her to bear it, and, taking
the ignominious place, she fixed her eyes on the stove funnel above what now seemed a sea of faces, and stood there, so motionless and white that
the girls found it hard to study with that pathetic figure before them.

During  the  fifteen  minutes  that  followed, the proud and sensitive little girl suffered a shame and pain which she never forgot. To others it
might  seem  a ludicrous or trivial affair, but to her it was a hard experience, for during the twelve years of her life she had been governed by
love  alone, and a blow of that sort had never touched her before. The smart of her hand and the ache of her heart were forgotten in the sting of
the thought, "I shall have to tell at home, and they will be so disappointed in me!"

The fifteen minutes seemed an hour, but they came to an end at last, and the word 'Recess!' had never seemed so welcome to her before.

"You can go, Miss March," said Mr. Davis, looking, as he felt, uncomfortable.

He  did  not  soon  forget  the  reproachful glance Amy gave him, as she went, without a word to anyone, straight into the anteroom, snatched her
things, and left the place "forever," as she passionately declared to herself. She was in a sad state when she got home, and when the older girls
arrived,  some time later, an indignation meeting was held at once. Mrs. March did not say much but looked disturbed, and comforted her afflicted
little  daughter  in  her  tenderest manner. Meg bathed the insulted hand with glycerine and tears, Beth felt that even her beloved kittens would
fail  as a balm for griefs like this, Jo wrathfully proposed that Mr. Davis be arrested without delay, and Hannah shook her fist at the 'villain'
and pounded potatoes for dinner as if she had him under her pestle.

No  notice  was  taken  of Amy's flight, except by her mates, but the sharp-eyed demoiselles discovered that Mr. Davis was quite benignant in the
afternoon, also unusually nervous. Just before school closed, Jo appeared, wearing a grim expression as she stalked up to the desk, and delivered
a letter from her mother, then collected Amy's property, and departed, carefully scraping the mud from her boots on the door mat, as if she shook
the dust of the place off her feet.

"Yes,  you can have a vacation from school, but I want you to study a little every day with Beth," said Mrs. March that evening. "I don't approve
of corporal punishment, especially for girls. I dislike Mr. Davis's manner of teaching and don't think the girls you associate with are doing you
any good, so I shall ask your father's advice before I send you anywhere else."

"That's  good!  I wish all the girls would leave, and spoil his old school. It's perfectly maddening to think of those lovely limes," sighed Amy,
with the air of a martyr.

"I  am  not  sorry  you  lost  them,  for you broke the rules, and deserved some punishment for disobedience," was the severe reply, which rather
disappointed the young lady, who expected nothing but sympathy.

"Do you mean you are glad I was disgraced before the whole school?" cried Amy.

"I  should  not  have  chosen  that  way  of mending a fault," replied her mother, "but I'm not sure that it won't do you more good than a bolder
method.  You are getting to be rather conceited, my dear, and it is quite time you set about correcting it. You have a good many little gifts and
virtues,  but there is no need of parading them, for conceit spoils the finest genius. There is not much danger that real talent or goodness will
be  overlooked  long,  even  if  it is, the consciousness of possessing and using it well should satisfy one, and the great charm of all power is
modesty."

"So  it  is!" cried Laurie, who was playing chess in a corner with Jo. "I knew a girl once, who had a really remarkable talent for music, and she
didn't know it, never guessed what sweet little things she composed when she was alone, and wouldn't have believed it if anyone had told her."

"I wish I'd known that nice girl. Maybe she would have helped me, I'm so stupid," said Beth, who stood beside him, listening eagerly.

"You  do  know  her, and she helps you better than anyone else could," answered Laurie, looking at her with such mischievous meaning in his merry
black eyes that Beth suddenly turned very red, and hid her face in the sofa cushion, quite overcome by such an unexpected discovery.

Jo  let  Laurie win the game to pay for that praise of her Beth, who could not be prevailed upon to play for them after her compliment. So Laurie
did  his  best, and sang delightfully, being in a particularly lively humor, for to the Marches he seldom showed the moody side of his character.
When he was gone, Amy, who had been pensive all evening, said suddenly, as if busy over some new idea, "Is Laurie an accomplished boy?"

"Yes, he has had an excellent education, and has much talent. He will make a fine man, if not spoiled by petting," replied her mother.

"And he isn't conceited, is he?" asked Amy.

"Not in the least. That is why he is so charming and we all like him so much."

"I see. It's nice to have accomplishments and be elegant, but not to show off or get perked up," said Amy thoughtfully.

"These  things  are always seen and felt in a person's manner and conversations, if modestly used, but it is not necessary to display them," said
Mrs. March.

"Any  more  than  it's  proper  to  wear  all your bonnets and gowns and ribbons at once, that folks may know you've got them," added Jo, and the
lecture ended in a laugh.




CHAPTER EIGHT

JO MEETS APOLLYON

"Girls,  where  are you going?" asked Amy, coming into their room one Saturday afternoon, and finding them getting ready to go out with an air of
secrecy which excited her curiosity.

"Never mind. Little girls shouldn't ask questions," returned Jo sharply.

Now  if there is anything mortifying to our feelings when we are young, it is to be told that, and to be bidden to "run away, dear" is still more
trying  to us. Amy bridled up at this insult, and determined to find out the secret, if she teased for an hour. Turning to Meg, who never refused
her  anything  very  long,  she  said  coaxingly, "Do tell me! I should think you might let me go, too, for Beth is fussing over her piano, and I
haven't got anything to do, and am so lonely."

"I  can't, dear, because you aren't invited," began Meg, but Jo broke in impatiently, "Now, Meg, be quiet or you will spoil it all. You can't go,
Amy, so don't be a baby and whine about it."

"You  are  going  somewhere with Laurie, I know you are. You were whispering and laughing together on the sofa last night, and you stopped when I
came in. Aren't you going with him?"

"Yes, we are. Now do be still, and stop bothering."

Amy held her tongue, but used her eyes, and saw Meg slip a fan into her pocket.

"I  know! I know! You're going to the theater to see the _Seven Castles!_" she cried, adding resolutely, "and I shall go, for Mother said I might
see it, and I've got my rag money, and it was mean not to tell me in time."

"Just  listen to me a minute, and be a good child," said Meg soothingly. "Mother doesn't wish you to go this week, because your eyes are not well
enough yet to bear the light of this fairy piece. Next week you can go with Beth and Hannah, and have a nice time."

"I  don't  like  that half as well as going with you and Laurie. Please let me. I've been sick with this cold so long, and shut up, I'm dying for
some fun. Do, Meg! I'll be ever so good," pleaded Amy, looking as pathetic as she could.

"Suppose we take her. I don't believe Mother would mind, if we bundle her up well," began Meg.

"If  she goes I shan't, and if I don't, Laurie won't like it, and it will be very rude, after he invited only us, to go and drag in Amy. I should
think  she'd  hate  to poke herself where she isn't wanted," said Jo crossly, for she disliked the trouble of overseeing a fidgety child when she
wanted to enjoy herself.

Her  tone  and  manner angered Amy, who began to put her boots on, saying, in her most aggravating way, "I shall go. Meg says I may, and if I pay
for myself, Laurie hasn't anything to do with it."

"You  can't  sit  with  us,  for  our  seats  are reserved, and you mustn't sit alone, so Laurie will give you his place, and that will spoil our
pleasure. Or he'll get another seat for you, and that isn't proper when you weren't asked. You shan't stir a step, so you may just stay where you
are," scolded Jo, crosser than ever, having just pricked her finger in her hurry.

Sitting  on  the  floor  with  one boot on, Amy began to cry and Meg to reason with her, when Laurie called from below, and the two girls hurried
down,  leaving  their sister wailing. For now and then she forgot her grown-up ways and acted like a spoiled child. Just as the party was setting
out, Amy called over the banisters in a threatening tone, "You'll be sorry for this, Jo March, see if you ain't."

"Fiddlesticks!" returned Jo, slamming the door.

They  had  a  charming  time, for _The Seven Castles Of The Diamond Lake_ was as brilliant and wonderful as heart could wish. But in spite of the
comical  red  imps,  sparkling  elves,  and  the gorgeous princes and princesses, Jo's pleasure had a drop of bitterness in it. The fairy queen's
yellow curls reminded her of Amy, and between the acts she amused herself with wondering what her sister would do to make her 'sorry for it'. She
and  Amy  had  had many lively skirmishes in the course of their lives, for both had quick tempers and were apt to be violent when fairly roused.
Amy  teased  Jo, and Jo irritated Amy, and semioccasional explosions occurred, of which both were much ashamed afterward. Although the oldest, Jo
had  the  least  self-control, and had hard times trying to curb the fiery spirit which was continually getting her into trouble. Her anger never
lasted long, and having humbly confessed her fault, she sincerely repented and tried to do better. Her sisters used to say that they rather liked
to  get  Jo  into  a  fury because she was such an angel afterward. Poor Jo tried desperately to be good, but her bosom enemy was always ready to
flame up and defeat her, and it took years of patient effort to subdue it.

When  they  got  home,  they found Amy reading in the parlor. She assumed an injured air as they came in, never lifted her eyes from her book, or
asked  a  single  question.  Perhaps  curiosity  might  have  conquered  resentment,  if Beth had not been there to inquire and receive a glowing
description  of  the play. On going up to put away her best hat, Jo's first look was toward the bureau, for in their last quarrel Amy had soothed
her feelings by turning Jo's top drawer upside down on the floor. Everything was in its place, however, and after a hasty glance into her various
closets, bags, and boxes, Jo decided that Amy had forgiven and forgotten her wrongs.

There  Jo  was  mistaken,  for  next  day  she  made  a discovery which produced a tempest. Meg, Beth, and Amy were sitting together, late in the
afternoon, when Jo burst into the room, looking excited and demanding breathlessly, "Has anyone taken my book?"

Meg  and  Beth  said,  "No." at once, and looked surprised. Amy poked the fire and said nothing. Jo saw her color rise and was down upon her in a
minute.

"Amy, you've got it!"

"No, I haven't."

"You know where it is, then!"

"No, I don't."

"That's a fib!" cried Jo, taking her by the shoulders, and looking fierce enough to frighten a much braver child than Amy.

"It isn't. I haven't got it, don't know where it is now, and don't care."

"You know something about it, and you'd better tell at once, or I'll make you." And Jo gave her a slight shake.

"Scold as much as you like, you'll never see your silly old book again," cried Amy, getting excited in her turn.

"Why not?"

"I burned it up."

"What! My little book I was so fond of, and worked over, and meant to finish before Father got home? Have you really burned it?" said Jo, turning
very pale, while her eyes kindled and her hands clutched Amy nervously.

"Yes, I did! I told you I'd make you pay for being so cross yesterday, and I have, so . . ."

Amy  got  no  farther, for Jo's hot temper mastered her, and she shook Amy till her teeth chattered in her head, crying in a passion of grief and
anger . . .

"You wicked, wicked girl! I never can write it again, and I'll never forgive you as long as I live."

Meg flew to rescue Amy, and Beth to pacify Jo, but Jo was quite beside herself, and with a parting box on her sister's ear, she rushed out of the
room up to the old sofa in the garret, and finished her fight alone.

The  storm  cleared  up  below,  for Mrs. March came home, and, having heard the story, soon brought Amy to a sense of the wrong she had done her
sister.  Jo's  book  was  the  pride of her heart, and was regarded by her family as a literary sprout of great promise. It was only half a dozen
little  fairy tales, but Jo had worked over them patiently, putting her whole heart into her work, hoping to make something good enough to print.
She  had  just  copied  them with great care, and had destroyed the old manuscript, so that Amy's bonfire had consumed the loving work of several
years.  It  seemed a small loss to others, but to Jo it was a dreadful calamity, and she felt that it never could be made up to her. Beth mourned
as  for  a  departed kitten, and Meg refused to defend her pet. Mrs. March looked grave and grieved, and Amy felt that no one would love her till
she had asked pardon for the act which she now regretted more than any of them.

When the tea bell rang, Jo appeared, looking so grim and unapproachable that it took all Amy's courage to say meekly . . .

"Please forgive me, Jo. I'm very, very sorry."

"I never shall forgive you," was Jo's stern answer, and from that moment she ignored Amy entirely.

No  one  spoke  of the great trouble, not even Mrs. March, for all had learned by experience that when Jo was in that mood words were wasted, and
the wisest course was to wait till some little accident, or her own generous nature, softened Jo's resentment and healed the breach. It was not a
happy  evening,  for  though  they sewed as usual, while their mother read aloud from Bremer, Scott, or Edgeworth, something was wanting, and the
sweet  home  peace  was  disturbed. They felt this most when singing time came, for Beth could only play, Jo stood dumb as a stone, and Amy broke
down, so Meg and Mother sang alone. But in spite of their efforts to be as cheery as larks, the flutelike voices did not seem to chord as well as
usual, and all felt out of tune.

As  Jo  received  her good-night kiss, Mrs. March whispered gently, "My dear, don't let the sun go down upon your anger. Forgive each other, help
each other, and begin again tomorrow."

Jo  wanted to lay her head down on that motherly bosom, and cry her grief and anger all away, but tears were an unmanly weakness, and she felt so
deeply  injured  that  she really couldn't quite forgive yet. So she winked hard, shook her head, and said gruffly because Amy was listening, "It
was an abominable thing, and she doesn't deserve to be forgiven."

With that she marched off to bed, and there was no merry or confidential gossip that night.

Amy  was  much  offended  that her overtures of peace had been repulsed, and began to wish she had not humbled herself, to feel more injured than
ever, and to plume herself on her superior virtue in a way which was particularly exasperating. Jo still looked like a thunder cloud, and nothing
went  well  all day. It was bitter cold in the morning, she dropped her precious turnover in the gutter, Aunt March had an attack of the fidgets,
Meg  was sensitive, Beth would look grieved and wistful when she got home, and Amy kept making remarks about people who were always talking about
being good and yet wouldn't even try when other people set them a virtuous example.

"Everybody is so hateful, I'll ask Laurie to go skating. He is always kind and jolly, and will put me to rights, I know," said Jo to herself, and
off she went.

Amy heard the clash of skates, and looked out with an impatient exclamation.

"There! She promised I should go next time, for this is the last ice we shall have. But it's no use to ask such a crosspatch to take me."

"Don't  say  that.  You were very naughty, and it is hard to forgive the loss of her precious little book, but I think she might do it now, and I
guess  she will, if you try her at the right minute," said Meg. "Go after them. Don't say anything till Jo has got good-natured with Laurie, than
take a quiet minute and just kiss her, or do some kind thing, and I'm sure she'll be friends again with all her heart."

"I'll  try," said Amy, for the advice suited her, and after a flurry to get ready, she ran after the friends, who were just disappearing over the
hill.

It  was not far to the river, but both were ready before Amy reached them. Jo saw her coming, and turned her back. Laurie did not see, for he was
carefully skating along the shore, sounding the ice, for a warm spell had preceded the cold snap.

"I'll  go  on  to  the  first  bend, and see if it's all right before we begin to race," Amy heard him say, as he shot away, looking like a young
Russian in his fur-trimmed coat and cap.

Jo  heard Amy panting after her run, stamping her feet and blowing on her fingers as she tried to put her skates on, but Jo never turned and went
slowly  zigzagging  down  the  river, taking a bitter, unhappy sort of satisfaction in her sister's troubles. She had cherished her anger till it
grew  strong  and  took possession of her, as evil thoughts and feelings always do unless cast out at once. As Laurie turned the bend, he shouted
back . . .

"Keep  near  the  shore. It isn't safe in the middle." Jo heard, but Amy was struggling to her feet and did not catch a word. Jo glanced over her
shoulder, and the little demon she was harboring said in her ear . . .

"No matter whether she heard or not, let her take care of herself."

Laurie  had  vanished  round  the  bend,  Jo was just at the turn, and Amy, far behind, striking out toward the smoother ice in the middle of the
river. For a minute Jo stood still with a strange feeling in her heart, then she resolved to go on, but something held and turned her round, just
in  time  to see Amy throw up her hands and go down, with a sudden crash of rotten ice, the splash of water, and a cry that made Jo's heart stand
still  with  fear.  She tried to call Laurie, but her voice was gone. She tried to rush forward, but her feet seemed to have no strength in them,
and  for  a second, she could only stand motionless, staring with a terror-stricken face at the little blue hood above the black water. Something
rushed swiftly by her, and Laurie's voice cried out . . .

"Bring a rail. Quick, quick!"

How  she  did  it, she never knew, but for the next few minutes she worked as if possessed, blindly obeying Laurie, who was quite self-possessed,
and  lying  flat,  held  Amy  up  by  his  arm  and hockey stick till Jo dragged a rail from the fence, and together they got the child out, more
frightened than hurt.

"Now  then, we must walk her home as fast as we can. Pile our things on her, while I get off these confounded skates," cried Laurie, wrapping his
coat round Amy, and tugging away at the straps which never seemed so intricate before.

Shivering,  dripping,  and  crying,  they  got Amy home, and after an exciting time of it, she fell asleep, rolled in blankets before a hot fire.
During  the bustle Jo had scarcely spoken but flown about, looking pale and wild, with her things half off, her dress torn, and her hands cut and
bruised  by ice and rails and refractory buckles. When Amy was comfortably asleep, the house quiet, and Mrs. March sitting by the bed, she called
Jo to her and began to bind up the hurt hands.

"Are  you sure she is safe?" whispered Jo, looking remorsefully at the golden head, which might have been swept away from her sight forever under
the treacherous ice.

"Quite  safe,  dear.  She is not hurt, and won't even take cold, I think, you were so sensible in covering and getting her home quickly," replied
her mother cheerfully.

"Laurie  did  it  all.  I  only  let her go. Mother, if she should die, it would be my fault." And Jo dropped down beside the bed in a passion of
penitent  tears,  telling  all  that  had happened, bitterly condemning her hardness of heart, and sobbing out her gratitude for being spared the
heavy punishment which might have come upon her.

"It's  my  dreadful  temper!  I try to cure it, I think I have, and then it breaks out worse than ever. Oh, Mother, what shall I do? What shall I
do?" cried poor Jo, in despair.

"Watch  and  pray,  dear, never get tired of trying, and never think it is impossible to conquer your fault," said Mrs. March, drawing the blowzy
head to her shoulder and kissing the wet cheek so tenderly that Jo cried even harder.

"You  don't  know,  you can't guess how bad it is! It seems as if I could do anything when I'm in a passion. I get so savage, I could hurt anyone
and enjoy it. I'm afraid I shall do something dreadful some day, and spoil my life, and make everybody hate me. Oh, Mother, help me, do help me!"

"I will, my child, I will. Don't cry so bitterly, but remember this day, and resolve with all your soul that you will never know another like it.
Jo, dear, we all have our temptations, some far greater than yours, and it often takes us all our lives to conquer them. You think your temper is
the worst in the world, but mine used to be just like it."

"Yours, Mother? Why, you are never angry!" And for the moment Jo forgot remorse in surprise.

"I've  been  trying to cure it for forty years, and have only succeeded in controlling it. I am angry nearly every day of my life, Jo, but I have
learned not to show it, and I still hope to learn not to feel it, though it may take me another forty years to do so."

The  patience  and  the  humility of the face she loved so well was a better lesson to Jo than the wisest lecture, the sharpest reproof. She felt
comforted  at  once by the sympathy and confidence given her. The knowledge that her mother had a fault like hers, and tried to mend it, made her
own  easier  to  bear  and  strengthened  her  resolution to cure it, though forty years seemed rather a long time to watch and pray to a girl of
fifteen.

"Mother,  are  you  angry  when  you fold your lips tight together and go out of the room sometimes, when Aunt March scolds or people worry you?"
asked Jo, feeling nearer and dearer to her mother than ever before.

"Yes, I've learned to check the hasty words that rise to my lips, and when I feel that they mean to break out against my will, I just go away for
a minute, and give myself a little shake for being so weak and wicked," answered Mrs. March with a sigh and a smile, as she smoothed and fastened
up Jo's disheveled hair.

"How  did  you  learn  to  keep still? That is what troubles me, for the sharp words fly out before I know what I'm about, and the more I say the
worse I get, till it's a pleasure to hurt people's feelings and say dreadful things. Tell me how you do it, Marmee dear."

"My good mother used to help me . . ."

"As you do us . . ." interrupted Jo, with a grateful kiss.

"But  I  lost  her  when I was a little older than you are, and for years had to struggle on alone, for I was too proud to confess my weakness to
anyone else. I had a hard time, Jo, and shed a good many bitter tears over my failures, for in spite of my efforts I never seemed to get on. Then
your  father came, and I was so happy that I found it easy to be good. But by-and-by, when I had four little daughters round me and we were poor,
then the old trouble began again, for I am not patient by nature, and it tried me very much to see my children wanting anything."

"Poor Mother! What helped you then?"

"Your  father, Jo. He never loses patience, never doubts or complains, but always hopes, and works and waits so cheerfully that one is ashamed to
do  otherwise  before  him.  He  helped  and comforted me, and showed me that I must try to practice all the virtues I would have my little girls
possess,  for I was their example. It was easier to try for your sakes than for my own. A startled or surprised look from one of you when I spoke
sharply  rebuked  me  more  than  any words could have done, and the love, respect, and confidence of my children was the sweetest reward I could
receive for my efforts to be the woman I would have them copy."

"Oh, Mother, if I'm ever half as good as you, I shall be satisfied," cried Jo, much touched.

"I  hope  you  will  be  a great deal better, dear, but you must keep watch over your 'bosom enemy', as father calls it, or it may sadden, if not
spoil  your  life.  You  have  had  a warning. Remember it, and try with heart and soul to master this quick temper, before it brings you greater
sorrow and regret than you have known today."

"I will try, Mother, I truly will. But you must help me, remind me, and keep me from flying out. I used to see Father sometimes put his finger on
his lips, and look at you with a very kind but sober face, and you always folded your lips tight and went away. Was he reminding you then?" asked
Jo softly.

"Yes. I asked him to help me so, and he never forgot it, but saved me from many a sharp word by that little gesture and kind look."

Jo saw that her mother's eyes filled and her lips trembled as she spoke, and fearing that she had said too much, she whispered anxiously, "Was it
wrong  to  watch  you and to speak of it? I didn't mean to be rude, but it's so comfortable to say all I think to you, and feel so safe and happy
here."

"My  Jo,  you  may say anything to your mother, for it is my greatest happiness and pride to feel that my girls confide in me and know how much I
love them."

"I thought I'd grieved you."

"No,  dear,  but  speaking  of Father reminded me how much I miss him, how much I owe him, and how faithfully I should watch and work to keep his
little daughters safe and good for him."

"Yet you told him to go, Mother, and didn't cry when he went, and never complain now, or seem as if you needed any help," said Jo, wondering.

"I gave my best to the country I love, and kept my tears till he was gone. Why should I complain, when we both have merely done our duty and will
surely  be  the  happier  for it in the end? If I don't seem to need help, it is because I have a better friend, even than Father, to comfort and
sustain  me.  My child, the troubles and temptations of your life are beginning and may be many, but you can overcome and outlive them all if you
learn to feel the strength and tenderness of your Heavenly Father as you do that of your earthly one. The more you love and trust Him, the nearer
you  will  feel  to  Him, and the less you will depend on human power and wisdom. His love and care never tire or change, can never be taken from
you,  but  may become the source of lifelong peace, happiness, and strength. Believe this heartily, and go to God with all your little cares, and
hopes, and sins, and sorrows, as freely and confidingly as you come to your mother."

Jo's  only answer was to hold her mother close, and in the silence which followed the sincerest prayer she had ever prayed left her heart without
words. For in that sad yet happy hour, she had learned not only the bitterness of remorse and despair, but the sweetness of self-denial and self-
control,  and  led by her mother's hand, she had drawn nearer to the Friend who always welcomes every child with a love stronger than that of any
father, tenderer than that of any mother.

Amy stirred and sighed in her sleep, and as if eager to begin at once to mend her fault, Jo looked up with an expression on her face which it had
never worn before.

"I  let the sun go down on my anger. I wouldn't forgive her, and today, if it hadn't been for Laurie, it might have been too late! How could I be
so wicked?" said Jo, half aloud, as she leaned over her sister softly stroking the wet hair scattered on the pillow.

As  if she heard, Amy opened her eyes, and held out her arms, with a smile that went straight to Jo's heart. Neither said a word, but they hugged
one another close, in spite of the blankets, and everything was forgiven and forgotten in one hearty kiss.



CHAPTER NINE

MEG GOES TO VANITY FAIR

"I  do  think it was the most fortunate thing in the world that those children should have the measles just now," said Meg, one April day, as she
stood packing the 'go abroady' trunk in her room, surrounded by her sisters.

"And so nice of Annie Moffat not to forget her promise. A whole fortnight of fun will be regularly splendid," replied Jo, looking like a windmill
as she folded skirts with her long arms.

"And such lovely weather, I'm so glad of that," added Beth, tidily sorting neck and hair ribbons in her best box, lent for the great occasion.

"I  wish  I  was going to have a fine time and wear all these nice things," said Amy with her mouth full of pins, as she artistically replenished
her sister's cushion.

"I  wish you were all going, but as you can't, I shall keep my adventures to tell you when I come back. I'm sure it's the least I can do when you
have  been so kind, lending me things and helping me get ready," said Meg, glancing round the room at the very simple outfit, which seemed nearly
perfect in their eyes.

"What  did  Mother  give  you out of the treasure box?" asked Amy, who had not been present at the opening of a certain cedar chest in which Mrs.
March kept a few relics of past splendor, as gifts for her girls when the proper time came.

"A  pair  of silk stockings, that pretty carved fan, and a lovely blue sash. I wanted the violet silk, but there isn't time to make it over, so I
must be contented with my old tarlaton."


"It  will  look nice over my new muslin skirt, and the sash will set it off beautifully. I wish I hadn't smashed my coral bracelet, for you might
have had it," said Jo, who loved to give and lend, but whose possessions were usually too dilapidated to be of much use.

"There  is a lovely old-fashioned pearl set in the treasure chest, but Mother said real flowers were the prettiest ornament for a young girl, and
Laurie  promised  to  send  me  all I want," replied Meg. "Now, let me see, there's my new gray walking suit, just curl up the feather in my hat,
Beth, then my poplin for Sunday and the small party, it looks heavy for spring, doesn't it? The violet silk would be so nice. Oh, dear!"

"Never  mind, you've got the tarlaton for the big party, and you always look like an angel in white," said Amy, brooding over the little store of
finery in which her soul delighted.

"It  isn't  low-necked, and it doesn't sweep enough, but it will have to do. My blue housedress looks so well, turned and freshly trimmed, that I
feel  as  if  I'd got a new one. My silk sacque isn't a bit the fashion, and my bonnet doesn't look like Sallie's. I didn't like to say anything,
but  I  was  sadly  disappointed  in my umbrella. I told Mother black with a white handle, but she forgot and bought a green one with a yellowish
handle.  It's strong and neat, so I ought not to complain, but I know I shall feel ashamed of it beside Annie's silk one with a gold top," sighed
Meg, surveying the little umbrella with great disfavor.

"Change it," advised Jo.

"I  won't  be  so  silly, or hurt Marmee's feelings, when she took so much pains to get my things. It's a nonsensical notion of mine, and I'm not
going  to  give  up  to it. My silk stockings and two pairs of new gloves are my comfort. You are a dear to lend me yours, Jo. I feel so rich and
sort of elegant, with two new pairs, and the old ones cleaned up for common." And Meg took a refreshing peep at her glove box.

"Annie  Moffat has blue and pink bows on her nightcaps. Would you put some on mine?" she asked, as Beth brought up a pile of snowy muslins, fresh
from Hannah's hands.

"No, I wouldn't, for the smart caps won't match the plain gowns without any trimming on them. Poor folks shouldn't rig," said Jo decidedly.

"I wonder if I shall ever be happy enough to have real lace on my clothes and bows on my caps?" said Meg impatiently.

"You said the other day that you'd be perfectly happy if you could only go to Annie Moffat's," observed Beth in her quiet way.

"So  I did! Well, I am happy, and I won't fret, but it does seem as if the more one gets the more one wants, doesn't it? There now, the trays are
ready,  and  everything in but my ball dress, which I shall leave for Mother to pack," said Meg, cheering up, as she glanced from the half-filled
trunk to the many times pressed and mended white tarlaton, which she called her 'ball dress' with an important air.

The  next  day  was  fine,  and  Meg  departed  in  style  for  a fortnight of novelty and pleasure. Mrs. March had consented to the visit rather
reluctantly,  fearing that Margaret would come back more discontented than she went. But she begged so hard, and Sallie had promised to take good
care of her, and a little pleasure seemed so delightful after a winter of irksome work that the mother yielded, and the daughter went to take her
first taste of fashionable life.

The  Moffats  were very fashionable, and simple Meg was rather daunted, at first, by the splendor of the house and the elegance of its occupants.
But  they  were  kindly  people,  in  spite  of  the  frivolous  life  they  led, and soon put their guest at her ease. Perhaps Meg felt, without
understanding  why,  that  they  were  not  particularly cultivated or intelligent people, and that all their gilding could not quite conceal the
ordinary  material  of  which they were made. It certainly was agreeable to fare sumptuously, drive in a fine carriage, wear her best frock every
day,  and  do nothing but enjoy herself. It suited her exactly, and soon she began to imitate the manners and conversation of those about her, to
put  on  little  airs  and graces, use French phrases, crimp her hair, take in her dresses, and talk about the fashions as well as she could. The
more  she  saw  of Annie Moffat's pretty things, the more she envied her and sighed to be rich. Home now looked bare and dismal as she thought of
it, work grew harder than ever, and she felt that she was a very destitute and much-injured girl, in spite of the new gloves and silk stockings.

She  had not much time for repining, however, for the three young girls were busily employed in 'having a good time'. They shopped, walked, rode,
and  called  all day, went to theaters and operas or frolicked at home in the evening, for Annie had many friends and knew how to entertain them.
Her  older  sisters were very fine young ladies, and one was engaged, which was extremely interesting and romantic, Meg thought. Mr. Moffat was a
fat, jolly old gentleman, who knew her father, and Mrs. Moffat, a fat, jolly old lady, who took as great a fancy to Meg as her daughter had done.
Everyone petted her, and 'Daisey', as they called her, was in a fair way to have her head turned.

When  the  evening  for  the small party came, she found that the poplin wouldn't do at all, for the other girls were putting on thin dresses and
making  themselves  very  fine indeed. So out came the tarlatan, looking older, limper, and shabbier than ever beside Sallie's crisp new one. Meg
saw  the  girls glance at it and then at one another, and her cheeks began to burn, for with all her gentleness she was very proud. No one said a
word  about  it,  but  Sallie offered to dress her hair, and Annie to tie her sash, and Belle, the engaged sister, praised her white arms. But in
their kindness Meg saw only pity for her poverty, and her heart felt very heavy as she stood by herself, while the others laughed, chattered, and
flew  about  like gauzy butterflies. The hard, bitter feeling was getting pretty bad, when the maid brought in a box of flowers. Before she could
speak, Annie had the cover off, and all were exclaiming at the lovely roses, heath, and fern within.

"It's for Belle, of course, George always sends her some, but these are altogether ravishing," cried Annie, with a great sniff.

"They are for Miss March, the man said. And here's a note," put in the maid, holding it to Meg.

"What fun! Who are they from? Didn't know you had a lover," cried the girls, fluttering about Meg in a high state of curiosity and surprise.

"The note is from Mother, and the flowers from Laurie," said Meg simply, yet much gratified that he had not forgotten her.

"Oh,  indeed!" said Annie with a funny look, as Meg slipped the note into her pocket as a sort of talisman against envy, vanity, and false pride,
for the few loving words had done her good, and the flowers cheered her up by their beauty.

Feeling almost happy again, she laid by a few ferns and roses for herself, and quickly made up the rest in dainty bouquets for the breasts, hair,
or  skirts of her friends, offering them so prettily that Clara, the elder sister, told her she was 'the sweetest little thing she ever saw', and
they  looked quite charmed with her small attention. Somehow the kind act finished her despondency, and when all the rest went to show themselves
to  Mrs.  Moffat,  she saw a happy, bright-eyed face in the mirror, as she laid her ferns against her rippling hair and fastened the roses in the
dress that didn't strike her as so very shabby now.

She  enjoyed  herself very much that evening, for she danced to her heart's content. Everyone was very kind, and she had three compliments. Annie
made  her  sing,  and some one said she had a remarkably fine voice. Major Lincoln asked who 'the fresh little girl with the beautiful eyes' was,
and Mr. Moffat insisted on dancing with her because she 'didn't dawdle, but had some spring in her', as he gracefully expressed it. So altogether
she  had a very nice time, till she overheard a bit of conversation, which disturbed her extremely. She was sitting just inside the conservatory,
waiting for her partner to bring her an ice, when she heard a voice ask on the other side of the flowery wall . . .

"How old is he?"

"Sixteen or seventeen, I should say," replied another voice.

"It would be a grand thing for one of those girls, wouldn't it? Sallie says they are very intimate now, and the old man quite dotes on them."

"Mrs.  M.  has  made  her plans, I dare say, and will play her cards well, early as it is. The girl evidently doesn't think of it yet," said Mrs.
Moffat.

"She  told that fib about her momma, as if she did know, and colored up when the flowers came quite prettily. Poor thing! She'd be so nice if she
was only got up in style. Do you think she'd be offended if we offered to lend her a dress for Thursday?" asked another voice.

"She's proud, but I don't believe she'd mind, for that dowdy tarlaton is all she has got. She may tear it tonight, and that will be a good excuse
for offering a decent one."

Here  Meg's  partner  appeared,  to  find her looking much flushed and rather agitated. She was proud, and her pride was useful just then, for it
helped  her  hide her mortification, anger, and disgust at what she had just heard. For, innocent and unsuspicious as she was, she could not help
understanding  the  gossip  of  her  friends. She tried to forget it, but could not, and kept repeating to herself, "Mrs. M. has made her plans,"
"that  fib  about  her mamma," and "dowdy tarlaton," till she was ready to cry and rush home to tell her troubles and ask for advice. As that was
impossible,  she did her best to seem gay, and being rather excited, she succeeded so well that no one dreamed what an effort she was making. She
was very glad when it was all over and she was quiet in her bed, where she could think and wonder and fume till her head ached and her hot cheeks
were  cooled  by a few natural tears. Those foolish, yet well meant words, had opened a new world to Meg, and much disturbed the peace of the old
one  in  which  till  now  she  had  lived  as  happily as a child. Her innocent friendship with Laurie was spoiled by the silly speeches she had
overheard.  Her  faith in her mother was a little shaken by the worldly plans attributed to her by Mrs. Moffat, who judged others by herself, and
the sensible resolution to be contented with the simple wardrobe which suited a poor man's daughter was weakened by the unnecessary pity of girls
who thought a shabby dress one of the greatest calamities under heaven.

Poor  Meg  had  a restless night, and got up heavy-eyed, unhappy, half resentful toward her friends, and half ashamed of herself for not speaking
out  frankly  and  setting everything right. Everybody dawdled that morning, and it was noon before the girls found energy enough even to take up
their  worsted  work.  Something  in  the manner of her friends struck Meg at once. They treated her with more respect, she thought, took quite a
tender  interest  in what she said, and looked at her with eyes that plainly betrayed curiosity. All this surprised and flattered her, though she
did not understand it till Miss Belle looked up from her writing, and said, with a sentimental air . . .

"Daisy,  dear,  I've sent an invitation to your friend, Mr. Laurence, for Thursday. We should like to know him, and it's only a proper compliment
to you."

Meg colored, but a mischievous fancy to tease the girls made her reply demurely, "You are very kind, but I'm afraid he won't come."

"Why not, Cherie?" asked Miss Belle.

"He's too old."

"My child, what do you mean? What is his age, I beg to know!" cried Miss Clara.

"Nearly seventy, I believe," answered Meg, counting stitches to hide the merriment in her eyes.

"You sly creature! Of course we meant the young man," exclaimed Miss Belle, laughing.

"There  isn't  any,  Laurie  is  only a little boy." And Meg laughed also at the queer look which the sisters exchanged as she thus described her
supposed lover.

"About your age," Nan said.

"Nearer my sister Jo's; I am seventeen in August," returned Meg, tossing her head.

"It's very nice of him to send you flowers, isn't it?" said Annie, looking wise about nothing.

"Yes,  he often does, to all of us, for their house is full, and we are so fond of them. My mother and old Mr. Laurence are friends, you know, so
it is quite natural that we children should play together," and Meg hoped they would say no more.

"It's evident Daisy isn't out yet," said Miss Clara to Belle with a nod.

"Quite a pastoral state of innocence all round," returned Miss Belle with a shrug.

"I'm  going  out  to  get  some  little  matters  for my girls. Can I do anything for you, young ladies?" asked Mrs. Moffat, lumbering in like an
elephant in silk and lace.

"No, thank you, ma'am," replied Sallie. "I've got my new pink silk for Thursday and don't want a thing."

"Nor I . . ." began Meg, but stopped because it occurred to her that she did want several things and could not have them.

"What shall you wear?" asked Sallie.

"My old white one again, if I can mend it fit to be seen, it got sadly torn last night," said Meg, trying to speak quite easily, but feeling very
uncomfortable.

"Why don't you send home for another?" said Sallie, who was not an observing young lady.

"I  haven't got any other." It cost Meg an effort to say that, but Sallie did not see it and exclaimed in amiable surprise, "Only that? How funny
. . ." She did not finish her speech, for Belle shook her head at her and broke in, saying kindly . . .

"Not at all. Where is the use of having a lot of dresses when she isn't out yet? There's no need of sending home, Daisy, even if you had a dozen,
for I've got a sweet blue silk laid away, which I've outgrown, and you shall wear it to please me, won't you, dear?"

"You are very kind, but I don't mind my old dress if you don't, it does well enough for a little girl like me," said Meg.

"Now  do let me please myself by dressing you up in style. I admire to do it, and you'd be a regular little beauty with a touch here and there. I
shan't  let  anyone see you till you are done, and then we'll burst upon them like Cinderella and her godmother going to the ball," said Belle in
her persuasive tone.

Meg  couldn't  refuse  the offer so kindly made, for a desire to see if she would be 'a little beauty' after touching up caused her to accept and
forget all her former uncomfortable feelings toward the Moffats.

On  the  Thursday  evening,  Belle  shut herself up with her maid, and between them they turned Meg into a fine lady. They crimped and curled her
hair,  they  polished  her neck and arms with some fragrant powder, touched her lips with coralline salve to make them redder, and Hortense would
have  added  'a soupcon of rouge', if Meg had not rebelled. They laced her into a sky-blue dress, which was so tight she could hardly breathe and
so  low  in  the neck that modest Meg blushed at herself in the mirror. A set of silver filagree was added, bracelets, necklace, brooch, and even
earrings,  for Hortense tied them on with a bit of pink silk which did not show. A cluster of tea-rose buds at the bosom, and a ruche, reconciled
Meg  to  the  display  of  her  pretty,  white  shoulders,  and  a  pair  of  high-heeled silk boots satisfied the last wish of her heart. A lace
handkerchief,  a  plumy  fan,  and a bouquet in a shoulder holder finished her off, and Miss Belle surveyed her with the satisfaction of a little
girl with a newly dressed doll.

"Mademoiselle is charmante, tres jolie, is she not?" cried Hortense, clasping her hands in an affected rapture.

"Come and show yourself," said Miss Belle, leading the way to the room where the others were waiting.

As Meg went rustling after, with her long skirts trailing, her earrings tinkling, her curls waving, and her heart beating, she felt as if her fun
had  really  begun  at  last,  for  the  mirror  had  plainly  told  her that she was 'a little beauty'. Her friends repeated the pleasing phrase
enthusiastically,  and  for several minutes she stood, like a jackdaw in the fable, enjoying her borrowed plumes, while the rest chattered like a
party of magpies.

"While  I  dress,  do  you  drill  her, Nan, in the management of her skirt and those French heels, or she will trip herself up. Take your silver
butterfly,  and  catch  up  that long curl on the left side of her head, Clara, and don't any of you disturb the charming work of my hands," said
Belle, as she hurried away, looking well pleased with her success.

"You  don't  look  a  bit  like yourself, but you are very nice. I'm nowhere beside you, for Belle has heaps of taste, and you're quite French, I
assure  you.  Let  your  flowers hang, don't be so careful of them, and be sure you don't trip," returned Sallie, trying not to care that Meg was
prettier than herself.

Keeping  that  warning  carefully  in  mind,  Margaret got safely down stairs and sailed into the drawing rooms where the Moffats and a few early
guests  were  assembled.  She  very soon discovered that there is a charm about fine clothes which attracts a certain class of people and secures
their  respect. Several young ladies, who had taken no notice of her before, were very affectionate all of a sudden. Several young gentlemen, who
had  only  stared at her at the other party, now not only stared, but asked to be introduced, and said all manner of foolish but agreeable things
to  her,  and  several  old ladies, who sat on the sofas, and criticized the rest of the party, inquired who she was with an air of interest. She
heard Mrs. Moffat reply to one of them . . .

"Daisy  March--father  a  colonel  in  the army--one of our first families, but reverses of fortune, you know; intimate friends of the Laurences;
sweet creature, I assure you; my Ned is quite wild about her."

"Dear  me!"  said  the  old  lady, putting up her glass for another observation of Meg, who tried to look as if she had not heard and been rather
shocked  at  Mrs.  Moffat's  fibs. The 'queer feeling' did not pass away, but she imagined herself acting the new part of fine lady and so got on
pretty  well,  though the tight dress gave her a side-ache, the train kept getting under her feet, and she was in constant fear lest her earrings
should fly off and get lost or broken. She was flirting her fan and laughing at the feeble jokes of a young gentleman who tried to be witty, when
she  suddenly  stopped  laughing  and  looked  confused,  for just opposite, she saw Laurie. He was staring at her with undisguised surprise, and
disapproval also, she thought, for though he bowed and smiled, yet something in his honest eyes made her blush and wish she had her old dress on.
To  complete her confusion, she saw Belle nudge Annie, and both glance from her to Laurie, who, she was happy to see, looked unusually boyish and
shy.

"Silly creatures, to put such thoughts into my head. I won't care for it, or let it change me a bit," thought Meg, and rustled across the room to
shake hands with her friend.

"I'm glad you came, I was afraid you wouldn't." she said, with her most grown-up air.

"Jo  wanted  me to come, and tell her how you looked, so I did," answered Laurie, without turning his eyes upon her, though he half smiled at her
maternal tone.

"What shall you tell her?" asked Meg, full of curiosity to know his opinion of her, yet feeling ill at ease with him for the first time.

"I shall say I didn't know you, for you look so grown-up and unlike yourself, I'm quite afraid of you," he said, fumbling at his glove button.

"How  absurd  of  you!  The girls dressed me up for fun, and I rather like it. Wouldn't Jo stare if she saw me?" said Meg, bent on making him say
whether he thought her improved or not.

"Yes, I think she would," returned Laurie gravely.

"Don't you like me so?" asked Meg.

"No, I don't," was the blunt reply.

"Why not?" in an anxious tone.

He  glanced at her frizzled head, bare shoulders, and fantastically trimmed dress with an expression that abashed her more than his answer, which
had not a particle of his usual politeness in it.

"I don't like fuss and feathers."

That was altogether too much from a lad younger than herself, and Meg walked away, saying petulantly, "You are the rudest boy I ever saw."

Feeling  very  much  ruffled,  she  went  and stood at a quiet window to cool her cheeks, for the tight dress gave her an uncomfortably brilliant
color. As she stood there, Major Lincoln passed by, and a minute after she heard him saying to his mother . . .

"They are making a fool of that little girl. I wanted you to see her, but they have spoiled her entirely. She's nothing but a doll tonight."

"Oh, dear!" sighed Meg. "I wish I'd been sensible and worn my own things, then I should not have disgusted other people, or felt so uncomfortable
and ashamed of myself."

She  leaned  her forehead on the cool pane, and stood half hidden by the curtains, never minding that her favorite waltz had begun, till some one
touched her, and turning, she saw Laurie, looking penitent, as he said, with his very best bow and his hand out . . .

"Please forgive my rudeness, and come and dance with me."

"I'm afraid it will be too disagreeable to you," said Meg, trying to look offended and failing entirely.

"Not  a bit of it, I'm dying to do it. Come, I'll be good. I don't like your gown, but I do think you are just splendid." And he waved his hands,
as if words failed to express his admiration.

Meg  smiled  and  relented, and whispered as they stood waiting to catch the time, "Take care my skirt doesn't trip you up. It's the plague of my
life and I was a goose to wear it."

"Pin it round your neck, and then it will be useful," said Laurie, looking down at the little blue boots, which he evidently approved of.

Away they went fleetly and gracefully, for having practiced at home, they were well matched, and the blithe young couple were a pleasant sight to
see, as they twirled merrily round and round, feeling more friendly than ever after their small tiff.

"Laurie,  I  want  you to do me a favor, will you?" said Meg, as he stood fanning her when her breath gave out, which it did very soon though she
would not own why.

"Won't I!" said Laurie, with alacrity.

"Please don't tell them at home about my dress tonight. They won't understand the joke, and it will worry Mother."

"Then why did you do it?" said Laurie's eyes, so plainly that Meg hastily added . . .

"I shall tell them myself all about it, and 'fess' to Mother how silly I've been. But I'd rather do it myself. So you'll not tell, will you?"

"I give you my word I won't, only what shall I say when they ask me?"

"Just say I looked pretty well and was having a good time."

"I'll  say the first with all my heart, but how about the other? You don't look as if you were having a good time. Are you?" And Laurie looked at
her with an expression which made her answer in a whisper . . .

"No, not just now. Don't think I'm horrid. I only wanted a little fun, but this sort doesn't pay, I find, and I'm getting tired of it."

"Here  comes  Ned  Moffat.  What  does  he  want?" said Laurie, knitting his black brows as if he did not regard his young host in the light of a
pleasant addition to the party.

"He  put  his  name down for three dances, and I suppose he's coming for them. What a bore!" said Meg, assuming a languid air which amused Laurie
immensely.

He  did not speak to her again till suppertime, when he saw her drinking champagne with Ned and his friend Fisher, who were behaving 'like a pair
of fools', as Laurie said to himself, for he felt a brotherly sort of right to watch over the Marches and fight their battles whenever a defender
was needed.

"You'll  have  a  splitting  headache tomorrow, if you drink much of that. I wouldn't, Meg, your mother doesn't like it, you know," he whispered,
leaning over her chair, as Ned turned to refill her glass and Fisher stooped to pick up her fan.

"I'm  not  Meg tonight, I'm 'a doll' who does all sorts of crazy things. Tomorrow I shall put away my 'fuss and feathers' and be desperately good
again," she answered with an affected little laugh.

"Wish tomorrow was here, then," muttered Laurie, walking off, ill-pleased at the change he saw in her.

Meg  danced  and  flirted, chattered and giggled, as the other girls did. After supper she undertook the German, and blundered through it, nearly
upsetting  her  partner  with  her long skirt, and romping in a way that scandalized Laurie, who looked on and meditated a lecture. But he got no
chance to deliver it, for Meg kept away from him till he came to say good night.

"Remember!" she said, trying to smile, for the splitting headache had already begun.

"Silence a la mort," replied Laurie, with a melodramatic flourish, as he went away.

This little bit of byplay excited Annie's curiosity, but Meg was too tired for gossip and went to bed, feeling as if she had been to a masquerade
and  hadn't enjoyed herself as much as she expected. She was sick all the next day, and on Saturday went home, quite used up with her fortnight's
fun and feeling that she had 'sat in the lap of luxury' long enough.

"It  does  seem  pleasant  to  be quiet, and not have company manners on all the time. Home is a nice place, though it isn't splendid," said Meg,
looking about her with a restful expression, as she sat with her mother and Jo on the Sunday evening.

"I'm  glad to hear you say so, dear, for I was afraid home would seem dull and poor to you after your fine quarters," replied her mother, who had
given her many anxious looks that day. For motherly eyes are quick to see any change in children's faces.

Meg  had told her adventures gayly and said over and over what a charming time she had had, but something still seemed to weigh upon her spirits,
and  when  the  younger  girls were gone to bed, she sat thoughtfully staring at the fire, saying little and looking worried. As the clock struck
nine and Jo proposed bed, Meg suddenly left her chair and, taking Beth's stool, leaned her elbows on her mother's knee, saying bravely . . .

"Marmee, I want to 'fess'."

"I thought so. What is it, dear?"

"Shall I go away?" asked Jo discreetly.

"Of  course  not.  Don't  I  always tell you everything? I was ashamed to speak of it before the younger children, but I want you to know all the
dreadful things I did at the Moffats'."

"We are prepared," said Mrs. March, smiling but looking a little anxious.

"I told you they dressed me up, but I didn't tell you that they powdered and squeezed and frizzled, and made me look like a fashion-plate. Laurie
thought  I  wasn't proper. I know he did, though he didn't say so, and one man called me 'a doll'. I knew it was silly, but they flattered me and
said I was a beauty, and quantities of nonsense, so I let them make a fool of me."

"Is  that  all?" asked Jo, as Mrs. March looked silently at the downcast face of her pretty daughter, and could not find it in her heart to blame
her little follies.

"No, I drank champagne and romped and tried to flirt, and was altogether abominable," said Meg self-reproachfully.

"There is something more, I think." And Mrs. March smoothed the soft cheek, which suddenly grew rosy as Meg answered slowly . . .

"Yes. It's very silly, but I want to tell it, because I hate to have people say and think such things about us and Laurie."

Then  she  told  the  various  bits of gossip she had heard at the Moffats', and as she spoke, Jo saw her mother fold her lips tightly, as if ill
pleased that such ideas should be put into Meg's innocent mind.

"Well, if that isn't the greatest rubbish I ever heard," cried Jo indignantly. "Why didn't you pop out and tell them so on the spot?"

"I couldn't, it was so embarrassing for me. I couldn't help hearing at first, and then I was so angry and ashamed, I didn't remember that I ought
to go away."

"Just  wait  till  I see Annie Moffat, and I'll show you how to settle such ridiculous stuff. The idea of having 'plans' and being kind to Laurie
because he's rich and may marry us by-and-by! Won't he shout when I tell him what those silly things say about us poor children?" And Jo laughed,
as if on second thoughts the thing struck her as a good joke.

"If you tell Laurie, I'll never forgive you! She mustn't, must she, Mother?" said Meg, looking distressed.

"No,  never repeat that foolish gossip, and forget it as soon as you can," said Mrs. March gravely. "I was very unwise to let you go among people
of  whom I know so little, kind, I dare say, but worldly, ill-bred, and full of these vulgar ideas about young people. I am more sorry than I can
express for the mischief this visit may have done you, Meg."

"Don't  be  sorry,  I  won't let it hurt me. I'll forget all the bad and remember only the good, for I did enjoy a great deal, and thank you very
much  for  letting me go. I'll not be sentimental or dissatisfied, Mother. I know I'm a silly little girl, and I'll stay with you till I'm fit to
take  care  of  myself.  But  it  is  nice  to  be praised and admired, and I can't help saying I like it," said Meg, looking half ashamed of the
confession.

"That is perfectly natural, and quite harmless, if the liking does not become a passion and lead one to do foolish or unmaidenly things. Learn to
know and value the praise which is worth having, and to excite the admiration of excellent people by being modest as well as pretty, Meg."

Margaret  sat thinking a moment, while Jo stood with her hands behind her, looking both interested and a little perplexed, for it was a new thing
to  see  Meg blushing and talking about admiration, lovers, and things of that sort. And Jo felt as if during that fortnight her sister had grown
up amazingly, and was drifting away from her into a world where she could not follow.

"Mother, do you have 'plans', as Mrs. Moffat said?" asked Meg bashfully.

"Yes, my dear, I have a great many, all mothers do, but mine differ somewhat from Mrs. Moffat's, I suspect. I will tell you some of them, for the
time  has come when a word may set this romantic little head and heart of yours right, on a very serious subject. You are young, Meg, but not too
young to understand me, and mothers' lips are the fittest to speak of such things to girls like you. Jo, your turn will come in time, perhaps, so
listen to my 'plans' and help me carry them out, if they are good."

Jo  went  and  sat on one arm of the chair, looking as if she thought they were about to join in some very solemn affair. Holding a hand of each,
and watching the two young faces wistfully, Mrs. March said, in her serious yet cheery way . . .

"I  want  my daughters to be beautiful, accomplished, and good. To be admired, loved, and respected. To have a happy youth, to be well and wisely
married, and to lead useful, pleasant lives, with as little care and sorrow to try them as God sees fit to send. To be loved and chosen by a good
man  is  the best and sweetest thing which can happen to a woman, and I sincerely hope my girls may know this beautiful experience. It is natural
to  think  of  it,  Meg, right to hope and wait for it, and wise to prepare for it, so that when the happy time comes, you may feel ready for the
duties  and worthy of the joy. My dear girls, I am ambitious for you, but not to have you make a dash in the world, marry rich men merely because
they are rich, or have splendid houses, which are not homes because love is wanting. Money is a needful and precious thing, and when well used, a
noble  thing,  but I never want you to think it is the first or only prize to strive for. I'd rather see you poor men's wives, if you were happy,
beloved, contented, than queens on thrones, without self-respect and peace."

"Poor girls don't stand any chance, Belle says, unless they put themselves forward," sighed Meg.

"Then we'll be old maids," said Jo stoutly.

"Right, Jo. Better be happy old maids than unhappy wives, or unmaidenly girls, running about to find husbands," said Mrs. March decidedly. "Don't
be  troubled, Meg, poverty seldom daunts a sincere lover. Some of the best and most honored women I know were poor girls, but so love-worthy that
they  were  not  allowed to be old maids. Leave these things to time. Make this home happy, so that you may be fit for homes of your own, if they
are offered you, and contented here if they are not. One thing remember, my girls. Mother is always ready to be your confidant, Father to be your
friend, and both of us hope and trust that our daughters, whether married or single, will be the pride and comfort of our lives."

"We will, Marmee, we will!" cried both, with all their hearts, as she bade them good night.



CHAPTER TEN

THE P.C. AND P.O.

As  spring came on, a new set of amusements became the fashion, and the lengthening days gave long afternoons for work and play of all sorts. The
garden  had  to  be put in order, and each sister had a quarter of the little plot to do what she liked with. Hannah used to say, "I'd know which
each  of  them  gardings belonged to, ef I see 'em in Chiny," and so she might, for the girls' tastes differed as much as their characters. Meg's
had  roses  and  heliotrope, myrtle, and a little orange tree in it. Jo's bed was never alike two seasons, for she was always trying experiments.
This  year  it was to be a plantation of sun flowers, the seeds of which cheerful land aspiring plant were to feed Aunt Cockle-top and her family
of  chicks.  Beth  had  old-fashioned fragrant flowers in her garden, sweet peas and mignonette, larkspur, pinks, pansies, and southernwood, with
chickweed  for  the  birds  and  catnip  for  the  pussies.  Amy had a bower in hers, rather small and earwiggy, but very pretty to look at, with
honeysuckle  and morning-glories hanging their colored horns and bells in graceful wreaths all over it, tall white lilies, delicate ferns, and as
many brilliant, picturesque plants as would consent to blossom there.

Gardening,  walks, rows on the river, and flower hunts employed the fine days, and for rainy ones, they had house diversions, some old, some new,
all  more  or less original. One of these was the 'P.C.', for as secret societies were the fashion, it was thought proper to have one, and as all
of the girls admired Dickens, they called themselves the Pickwick Club. With a few interruptions, they had kept this up for a year, and met every
Saturday  evening  in  the  big  garret, on which occasions the ceremonies were as follows: Three chairs were arranged in a row before a table on
which was a lamp, also four white badges, with a big 'P.C.' in different colors on each, and the weekly newspaper called, The Pickwick Portfolio,
to  which  all  contributed  something, while Jo, who reveled in pens and ink, was the editor. At seven o'clock, the four members ascended to the
clubroom, tied their badges round their heads, and took their seats with great solemnity. Meg, as the eldest, was Samuel Pickwick, Jo, being of a
literary  turn,  Augustus  Snodgrass, Beth, because she was round and rosy, Tracy Tupman, and Amy, who was always trying to do what she couldn't,
was  Nathaniel  Winkle.  Pickwick, the president, read the paper, which was filled with original tales, poetry, local news, funny advertisements,
and  hints,  in  which  they good-naturedly reminded each other of their faults and short comings. On one occasion, Mr. Pickwick put on a pair of
spectacles  without any glass, rapped upon the table, hemmed, and having stared hard at Mr. Snodgrass, who was tilting back in his chair, till he
arranged himself properly, began to read:

__________________________________________________

"THE PICKWICK PORTFOLIO"



MAY 20, 18---

POET'S CORNER

ANNIVERSARY ODE


Again we meet to celebrate With badge and solemn rite, Our fifty-second anniversary, In Pickwick Hall, tonight.

We all are here in perfect health, None gone from our small band: Again we see each well-known face, And press each friendly hand.

Our Pickwick, always at his post, With reverence we greet, As, spectacles on nose, he reads Our well-filled weekly sheet.

Although he suffers from a cold, We joy to hear him speak, For words of wisdom from him fall, In spite of croak or squeak.

Old six-foot Snodgrass looms on high, With elephantine grace, And beams upon the company, With brown and jovial face.

Poetic fire lights up his eye, He struggles 'gainst his lot. Behold ambition on his brow, And on his nose, a blot.

Next our peaceful Tupman comes, So rosy, plump, and sweet, Who chokes with laughter at the puns, And tumbles off his seat.

Prim little Winkle too is here, With every hair in place, A model of propriety, Though he hates to wash his face.

The year is gone, we still unite To joke and laugh and read, And tread the path of literature That doth to glory lead.

Long may our paper prosper well, Our club unbroken be, And coming years their blessings pour On the useful, gay 'P. C.'. A. SNODGRASS

________

THE MASKED MARRIAGE (A Tale Of Venice)

Gondola after gondola swept up to the marble steps, and left its lovely load to swell the brilliant throng that filled the stately halls of Count
Adelon. Knights and ladies, elves and pages, monks and flower girls, all mingled gaily in the dance. Sweet voices and rich melody filled the air,
and  so  with  mirth  and  music the masquerade went on. "Has your Highness seen the Lady Viola tonight?" asked a gallant troubadour of the fairy
queen who floated down the hall upon his arm.

"Yes, is she not lovely, though so sad! Her dress is well chosen, too, for in a week she weds Count Antonio, whom she passionately hates."

"By  my  faith,  I  envy him. Yonder he comes, arrayed like a bridegroom, except the black mask. When that is off we shall see how he regards the
fair maid whose heart he cannot win, though her stern father bestows her hand," returned the troubadour.

"Tis  whispered that she loves the young English artist who haunts her steps, and is spurned by the old Count," said the lady, as they joined the
dance. The revel was at its height when a priest appeared, and withdrawing the young pair to an alcove, hung with purple velvet, he motioned them
to  kneel.  Instant  silence  fell  on  the gay throng, and not a sound, but the dash of fountains or the rustle of orange groves sleeping in the
moonlight, broke the hush, as Count de Adelon spoke thus:

"My  lords  and ladies, pardon the ruse by which I have gathered you here to witness the marriage of my daughter. Father, we wait your services."
All  eyes  turned  toward  the  bridal party, and a murmur of amazement went through the throng, for neither bride nor groom removed their masks.
Curiosity  and  wonder  possessed  all hearts, but respect restrained all tongues till the holy rite was over. Then the eager spectators gathered
round the count, demanding an explanation.

"Gladly  would  I give it if I could, but I only know that it was the whim of my timid Viola, and I yielded to it. Now, my children, let the play
end. Unmask and receive my blessing."

But  neither bent the knee, for the young bridegroom replied in a tone that startled all listeners as the mask fell, disclosing the noble face of
Ferdinand  Devereux, the artist lover, and leaning on the breast where now flashed the star of an English earl was the lovely Viola, radiant with
joy and beauty.

"My  lord,  you  scornfully bade me claim your daughter when I could boast as high a name and vast a fortune as the Count Antonio. I can do more,
for  even  your  ambitious soul cannot refuse the Earl of Devereux and De Vere, when he gives his ancient name and boundless wealth in return for
the beloved hand of this fair lady, now my wife."

The count stood like one changed to stone, and turning to the bewildered crowd, Ferdinand added, with a gay smile of triumph, "To you, my gallant
friends,  I  can  only  wish  that  your  wooing  may prosper as mine has done, and that you may all win as fair a bride as I have by this masked
marriage." S. PICKWICK


Why is the P. C. like the Tower of Babel? It is full of unruly members.

___________

THE HISTORY OF A SQUASH


Once upon a time a farmer planted a little seed in his garden, and after a while it sprouted and became a vine and bore many squashes. One day in
October, when they were ripe, he picked one and took it to market. A gorcerman bought and put it in his shop. That same morning, a little girl in
a  brown  hat and blue dress, with a round face and snub nose, went and bought it for her mother. She lugged it home, cut it up, and boiled it in
the  big  pot,  mashed  some  of  it  with salt and butter, for dinner. And to the rest she added a pint of milk, two eggs, four spoons of sugar,
nutmeg,  and some crackers, put it in a deep dish, and baked it till it was brown and nice, and next day it was eaten by a family named March. T.
TUPMAN

_____________

Mr.  Pickwick,  Sir:--I address you upon the subject of sin the sinner I mean is a man named Winkle who makes trouble in his club by laughing and
sometimes  won't write his piece in this fine paper I hope you will pardon his badness and let him send a French fable because he can't write out
of  his  head  as he has so many lessons to do and no brains in future I will try to take time by the fetlock and prepare some work which will be
all commy la fo that means all right I am in haste as it is nearly school time. Yours respectably, N. WINKLE

[The above is a manly and handsome aknowledgment of past misdemeanors. If our young friend studied punctuation, it would be well.]

_________

A SAD ACCIDENT

On  Friday  last,  we  were  startled  by  a violent shock in our basement, followed by cries of distress. On rushing in a body to the cellar, we
discovered our beloved President prostrate upon the floor, having tripped and fallen while getting wood for domestic purposes. A perfect scene of
ruin  met  our eyes, for in his fall Mr. Pickwick had plunged his head and shoulders into a tub of water, upset a keg of soft soap upon his manly
form,  and  torn  his garments badly. On being removed from this perilous situation, it was discovered that he had suffered no injury but several
bruises, and we are happy to add, is now doing well. ED.

_________

THE PUBLIC BEREAVEMENT

It  is our painful duty to record the sudden and mysterious disappearance of our cherished friend, Mrs. Snowball Pat Paw. This lovely and beloved
cat  was  the  pet  of a large circle of warm and admiring friends; for her beauty attracted all eyes, her graces and virtues endeared her to all
hearts, and her loss is deeply felt by the whole community.

When last seen, she was sitting at the gate, watching the butcher's cart, and it is feared that some villain, tempted by her charms, basely stole
her.  Weeks  have  passed,  but  no trace of her has been discovered, and we relinquish all hope, tie a black ribbon to her basket, set aside her
dish, and weep for her as one lost to us forever.

_________

A sympathizing friend sends the following gem:


A LAMENT (FOR S. B. PAT PAW)

We mourn the loss of our little pet, And sigh o'er her hapless fate, For never more by the fire she'll sit, Nor play by the old green gate.

The little grave where her infant sleeps Is 'neath the chestnut tree. But o'er her grave we may not weep, We know not where it may be.

Her empty bed, her idle ball, Will never see her more; No gentle tap, no loving purr Is heard at the parlor door.

Another cat comes after her mice, A cat with a dirty face, But she does not hunt as our darling did, Nor play with her airy grace.

Her stealthy paws tread the very hall Where Snowball used to play, But she only spits at the dogs our pet So gallantly drove away.

She  is  useful  and  mild,  and does her best, But she is not fair to see, And we cannot give her your place dear, Nor worship her as we worship
thee. A.S.

_________

ADVERTISEMENTS

MISS  ORANTHY  BLUGGAGE,  the  accomplished strong-minded lecturer, will deliver her famous lecture on "WOMAN AND HER POSITION" at Pickwick Hall,
next Saturday Evening, after the usual performances.


A WEEKLY MEETING will be held at Kitchen Place, to teach young ladies how to cook. Hannah Brown will preside, and all are invited to attend.

The  DUSTPAN  SOCIETY will meet on Wednesday next, and parade in the upper story of the Club House. All members to appear in uniform and shoulder
their brooms at nine precisely.

Mrs. BETH BOUNCER will open her new assortment of Doll's Millinery next week. The latest Paris fashions have arrived, and orders are respectfully
solicited.

A  NEW PLAY will appear at the Barnville Theatre, in the course of a few weeks, which will surpass anything ever seen on the American stage. "The
Greek Slave, or Constantine the Avenger," is the name of this thrilling drama!!!



HINTS

If S.P. didn't use so much soap on his hands, he wouldn't always be late at breakfast. A.S. is requested not to whistle in the street. T.T please
don't forget Amy's napkin. N.W. must not fret because his dress has not nine tucks.



WEEKLY REPORT

Meg--Good. Jo--Bad. Beth--Very Good. Amy--Middling.

__________________________________________________


As  the  President  finished reading the paper (which I beg leave to assure my readers is a bona fide copy of one written by bona fide girls once
upon a time), a round of applause followed, and then Mr. Snodgrass rose to make a proposition.

"Mr.  President  and  gentlemen," he began, assuming a parliamentary attitude and tone, "I wish to propose the admission of a new member--one who
highly  deserves  the honor, would be deeply grateful for it, and would add immensely to the spirit of the club, the literary value of the paper,
and be no end jolly and nice. I propose Mr. Theodore Laurence as an honorary member of the P. C. Come now, do have him."

Jo's sudden change of tone made the girls laugh, but all looked rather anxious, and no one said a word as Snodgrass took his seat.

"We'll put it to a vote," said the President. "All in favor of this motion please to manifest it by saying, 'Aye'."

A loud response from Snodgrass, followed, to everybody's surprise, by a timid one from Beth.

"Contrary-minded say, 'No'."

Meg  and Amy were contrary-minded, and Mr. Winkle rose to say with great elegance, "We don't wish any boys, they only joke and bounce about. This
is a ladies' club, and we wish to be private and proper."

"I'm  afraid  he'll  laugh at our paper, and make fun of us afterward," observed Pickwick, pulling the little curl on her forehead, as she always
did when doubtful.

Up  rose  Snodgrass,  very much in earnest. "Sir, I give you my word as a gentleman, Laurie won't do anything of the sort. He likes to write, and
he'll  give  a  tone to our contributions and keep us from being sentimental, don't you see? We can do so little for him, and he does so much for
us, I think the least we can do is to offer him a place here, and make him welcome if he comes."

This artful allusion to benefits conferred brought Tupman to his feet, looking as if he had quite made up his mind.

"Yes; we ought to do it, even if we are afraid. I say he may come, and his grandpa, too, if he likes."

This  spirited  burst  from Beth electrified the club, and Jo left her seat to shake hands approvingly. "Now then, vote again. Everybody remember
it's our Laurie, and say, 'Aye!'" cried Snodgrass excitedly.

"Aye! Aye! Aye!" replied three voices at once.

"Good!  Bless  you! Now, as there's nothing like 'taking time by the fetlock', as Winkle characteristically observes, allow me to present the new
member." And, to the dismay of the rest of the club, Jo threw open the door of the closet, and displayed Laurie sitting on a rag bag, flushed and
twinkling with suppressed laughter.

"You  rogue!  You  traitor! Jo, how could you?" cried the three girls, as Snodgrass led her friend triumphantly forth, and producing both a chair
and a badge, installed him in a jiffy.

"The  coolness  of  you  two rascals is amazing," began Mr. Pickwick, trying to get up an awful frown and only succeeding in producing an amiable
smile.  But the new member was equal to the occasion, and rising, with a grateful salutation to the Chair, said in the most engaging manner, "Mr.
President and ladies--I beg pardon, gentlemen--allow me to introduce myself as Sam Weller, the very humble servant of the club."

"Good! Good!" cried Jo, pounding with the handle of the old warming pan on which she leaned.

"My  faithful  friend and noble patron," continued Laurie with a wave of the hand, "who has so flatteringly presented me, is not to be blamed for
the base stratagem of tonight. I planned it, and she only gave in after lots of teasing."

"Come now, don't lay it all on yourself. You know I proposed the cupboard," broke in Snodgrass, who was enjoying the joke amazingly.

"Never  mind  what  she  says. I'm the wretch that did it, sir," said the new member, with a Welleresque nod to Mr. Pickwick. "But on my honor, I
never will do so again, and henceforth devote myself to the interest of this immortal club."

"Hear! Hear!" cried Jo, clashing the lid of the warming pan like a cymbal.

"Go on, go on!" added Winkle and Tupman, while the President bowed benignly.

"I  merely  wish  to  say,  that  as a slight token of my gratitude for the honor done me, and as a means of promoting friendly relations between
adjoining  nations,  I  have  set up a post office in the hedge in the lower corner of the garden, a fine, spacious building with padlocks on the
doors  and  every convenience for the mails, also the females, if I may be allowed the expression. It's the old martin house, but I've stopped up
the door and made the roof open, so it will hold all sorts of things, and save our valuable time. Letters, manuscripts, books, and bundles can be
passed  in  there,  and as each nation has a key, it will be uncommonly nice, I fancy. Allow me to present the club key, and with many thanks for
your favor, take my seat."

Great  applause  as  Mr.  Weller deposited a little key on the table and subsided, the warming pan clashed and waved wildly, and it was some time
before  order  could be restored. A long discussion followed, and everyone came out surprising, for everyone did her best. So it was an unusually
lively meeting, and did not adjourn till a late hour, when it broke up with three shrill cheers for the new member.

No  one ever regretted the admittance of Sam Weller, for a more devoted, well-behaved, and jovial member no club could have. He certainly did add
'spirit'  to  the  meetings,  and  'a  tone'  to  the  paper,  for his orations convulsed his hearers and his contributions were excellent, being
patriotic, classical, comical, or dramatic, but never sentimental. Jo regarded them as worthy of Bacon, Milton, or Shakespeare, and remodeled her
own works with good effect, she thought.

The  P.  O.  was  a capital little institution, and flourished wonderfully, for nearly as many queer things passed through it as through the real
post  office.  Tragedies  and cravats, poetry and pickles, garden seeds and long letters, music and gingerbread, rubbers, invitations, scoldings,
and  puppies.  The  old  gentleman  liked  the  fun, and amused himself by sending odd bundles, mysterious messages, and funny telegrams, and his
gardener,  who  was  smitten  with  Hannah's  charms,  actually sent a love letter to Jo's care. How they laughed when the secret came out, never
dreaming how many love letters that little post office would hold in the years to come.



CHAPTER ELEVEN

EXPERIMENTS

"The  first  of  June!  The  Kings  are off to the seashore tomorrow, and I'm free. Three months' vacation--how I shall enjoy it!" exclaimed Meg,
coming  home  one  warm  day  to  find Jo laid upon the sofa in an unusual state of exhaustion, while Beth took off her dusty boots, and Amy made
lemonade for the refreshment of the whole party.

"Aunt March went today, for which, oh, be joyful!" said Jo. "I was mortally afraid she'd ask me to go with her. If she had, I should have felt as
if  I  ought  to  do it, but Plumfield is about as gay as a churchyard, you know, and I'd rather be excused. We had a flurry getting the old lady
off,  and  I had a fright every time she spoke to me, for I was in such a hurry to be through that I was uncommonly helpful and sweet, and feared
she'd  find  it  impossible to part from me. I quaked till she was fairly in the carriage, and had a final fright, for as it drove of, she popped
out  her  head, saying, 'Josyphine, won't you--?' I didn't hear any more, for I basely turned and fled. I did actually run, and whisked round the
corner where I felt safe."

"Poor old Jo! She came in looking as if bears were after her," said Beth, as she cuddled her sister's feet with a motherly air.

"Aunt March is a regular samphire, is she not?" observed Amy, tasting her mixture critically.

"She means vampire, not seaweed, but it doesn't matter. It's too warm to be particular about one's parts of speech," murmured Jo.

"What shall you do all your vacation?" asked Amy, changing the subject with tact.

"I  shall  lie  abed  late,  and do nothing," replied Meg, from the depths of the rocking chair. "I've been routed up early all winter and had to
spend my days working for other people, so now I'm going to rest and revel to my heart's content."

"No,"  said  Jo,  "that dozy way wouldn't suit me. I've laid in a heap of books, and I'm going to improve my shining hours reading on my perch in
the old apple tree, when I'm not having l----"

"Don't say 'larks!'" implored Amy, as a return snub for the 'samphire' correction.

"I'll say 'nightingales' then, with Laurie. That's proper and appropriate, since he's a warbler."

"Don't let us do any lessons, Beth, for a while, but play all the time and rest, as the girls mean to," proposed Amy.

"Well, I will, if Mother doesn't mind. I want to learn some new songs, and my children need fitting up for the summer. They are dreadfully out of
order and really suffering for clothes."

"May we, Mother?" asked Meg, turning to Mrs. March, who sat sewing in what they called 'Marmee's corner'.

"You  may  try your experiment for a week and see how you like it. I think by Saturday night you will find that all play and no work is as bad as
all work and no play."

"Oh, dear, no! It will be delicious, I'm sure," said Meg complacently.

"I  now  propose  a  toast,  as my 'friend and pardner, Sairy Gamp', says. Fun forever, and no grubbing!" cried Jo, rising, glass in hand, as the
lemonade went round.

They  all  drank it merrily, and began the experiment by lounging for the rest of the day. Next morning, Meg did not appear till ten o'clock. Her
solitary  breakfast  did  not  taste good, and the room seemed lonely and untidy, for Jo had not filled the vases, Beth had not dusted, and Amy's
books  lay  scattered  about.  Nothing was neat and pleasant but 'Marmee's corner', which looked as usual. And there Meg sat, to 'rest and read',
which  meant  to yawn and imagine what pretty summer dresses she would get with her salary. Jo spent the morning on the river with Laurie and the
afternoon  reading  and  crying over _The Wide, Wide World_, up in the apple tree. Beth began by rummaging everything out of the big closet where
her  family  resided, but getting tired before half done, she left her establishment topsy-turvy and went to her music, rejoicing that she had no
dishes  to  wash.  Amy  arranged  her  bower, put on her best white frock, smoothed her curls, and sat down to draw under the honeysuckle, hoping
someone  would  see  and  inquire  who  the  young  artist  was. As no one appeared but an inquisitive daddy-longlegs, who examined her work with
interest, she went to walk, got caught in a shower, and came home dripping.

At  teatime they compared notes, and all agreed that it had been a delightful, though unusually long day. Meg, who went shopping in the afternoon
and  got  a 'sweet blue muslin', had discovered, after she had cut the breadths off, that it wouldn't wash, which mishap made her slightly cross.
Jo  had  burned the skin off her nose boating, and got a raging headache by reading too long. Beth was worried by the confusion of her closet and
the  difficulty of learning three or four songs at once, and Amy deeply regretted the damage done her frock, for Katy Brown's party was to be the
next  day and now like Flora McFlimsey, she had 'nothing to wear'. But these were mere trifles, and they assured their mother that the experiment
was  working  finely. She smiled, said nothing, and with Hannah's help did their neglected work, keeping home pleasant and the domestic machinery
running  smoothly.  It  was astonishing what a peculiar and uncomfortable state of things was produced by the 'resting and reveling' process. The
days  kept  getting longer and longer, the weather was unusually variable and so were tempers; an unsettled feeling possessed everyone, and Satan
found  plenty of mischief for the idle hands to do. As the height of luxury, Meg put out some of her sewing, and then found time hang so heavily,
that  she  fell  to  snipping and spoiling her clothes in her attempts to furbish them up a la Moffat. Jo read till her eyes gave out and she was
sick of books, got so fidgety that even good-natured Laurie had a quarrel with her, and so reduced in spirits that she desperately wished she had
gone  with  Aunt March. Beth got on pretty well, for she was constantly forgetting that it was to be all play and no work, and fell back into her
old  ways  now  and  then.  But  something in the air affected her, and more than once her tranquility was much disturbed, so much so that on one
occasion  she actually shook poor dear Joanna and told her she was 'a fright'. Amy fared worst of all, for her resources were small, and when her
sisters  left her to amuse herself, she soon found that accomplished and important little self a great burden. She didn't like dolls, fairy tales
were  childish,  and  one couldn't draw all the time. Tea parties didn't amount to much, neither did picnics, unless very well conducted. "If one
could  have a fine house, full of nice girls, or go traveling, the summer would be delightful, but to stay at home with three selfish sisters and
a grown-up boy was enough to try the patience of a Boaz," complained Miss Malaprop, after several days devoted to pleasure, fretting, and ennui.

No  one  would own that they were tired of the experiment, but by Friday night each acknowledged to herself that she was glad the week was nearly
done.  Hoping  to  impress  the  lesson more deeply, Mrs. March, who had a good deal of humor, resolved to finish off the trial in an appropriate
manner, so she gave Hannah a holiday and let the girls enjoy the full effect of the play system.

When they got up on Saturday morning, there was no fire in the kitchen, no breakfast in the dining room, and no mother anywhere to be seen.

"Mercy on us! What has happened?" cried Jo, staring about her in dismay.

Meg ran upstairs and soon came back again, looking relieved but rather bewildered, and a little ashamed.

"Mother  isn't  sick,  only  very tired, and she says she is going to stay quietly in her room all day and let us do the best we can. It's a very
queer  thing for her to do, she doesn't act a bit like herself. But she says it has been a hard week for her, so we mustn't grumble but take care
of ourselves."

"That's easy enough, and I like the idea, I'm aching for something to do, that is, some new amusement, you know," added Jo quickly.

In  fact  it  was  an  immense  relief to them all to have a little work, and they took hold with a will, but soon realized the truth of Hannah's
saying,  "Housekeeping  ain't  no  joke." There was plenty of food in the larder, and while Beth and Amy set the table, Meg and Jo got breakfast,
wondering as they did why servants ever talked about hard work.

"I  shall  take  some up to Mother, though she said we were not to think of her, for she'd take care of herself," said Meg, who presided and felt
quite matronly behind the teapot.

So  a tray was fitted out before anyone began, and taken up with the cook's compliments. The boiled tea was very bitter, the omelet scorched, and
the biscuits speckled with saleratus, but Mrs. March received her repast with thanks and laughed heartily over it after Jo was gone.

"Poor  little  souls,  they  will  have  a  hard time, I'm afraid, but they won't suffer, and it will do them good," she said, producing the more
palatable  viands  with  which she had provided herself, and disposing of the bad breakfast, so that their feelings might not be hurt, a motherly
little deception for which they were grateful.

Many  were  the complaints below, and great the chagrin of the head cook at her failures. "Never mind, I'll get the dinner and be servant, you be
mistress, keep your hands nice, see company, and give orders," said Jo, who knew still less than Meg about culinary affairs.

This obliging offer was gladly accepted, and Margaret retired to the parlor, which she hastily put in order by whisking the litter under the sofa
and  shutting  the  blinds to save the trouble of dusting. Jo, with perfect faith in her own powers and a friendly desire to make up the quarrel,
immediately put a note in the office, inviting Laurie to dinner.

"You'd better see what you have got before you think of having company," said Meg, when informed of the hospitable but rash act.

"Oh,  there's corned beef and plenty of poatoes, and I shall get some asparagus and a lobster, 'for a relish', as Hannah says. We'll have lettuce
and  make  a  salad.  I don't know how, but the book tells. I'll have blanc mange and strawberries for dessert, and coffee too, if you want to be
elegant."

"Don't  try  too many messes, Jo, for you can't make anything but gingerbread and molasses candy fit to eat. I wash my hands of the dinner party,
and since you have asked Laurie on your own responsibility, you may just take care of him."

"I  don't want you to do anything but be civil to him and help to the pudding. You'll give me your advice if I get in a muddle, won't you?" asked
Jo, rather hurt.

"Yes,  but  I  don't  know much, except about bread and a few trifles. You had better ask Mother's leave before you order anything," returned Meg
prudently.

"Of course I shall. I'm not a fool." And Jo went off in a huff at the doubts expressed of her powers.

"Get  what  you like, and don't disturb me. I'm going out to dinner and can't worry about things at home," said Mrs. March, when Jo spoke to her.
"I never enjoyed housekeeping, and I'm going to take a vacation today, and read, write, go visiting, and amuse myself."

The  unusual  spectacle  of her busy mother rocking comfortably and reading early in the morning made Jo feel as if some unnatural phenomenon had
occurred, for an eclipse, an earthquake, or a volcanic eruption would hardly have seemed stranger.

"Everything is out of sorts, somehow," she said to herself, going downstairs. "There's Beth crying, that's a sure sign that something is wrong in
this family. If Amy is bothering, I'll shake her."

Feeling  very  much out of sorts herself, Jo hurried into the parlor to find Beth sobbing over Pip, the canary, who lay dead in the cage with his
little claws pathetically extended, as if imploring the food for want of which he had died.

"It's  all  my  fault, I forgot him, there isn't a seed or a drop left. Oh, Pip! Oh, Pip! How could I be so cruel to you?" cried Beth, taking the
poor thing in her hands and trying to restore him.

Jo peeped into his half-open eye, felt his little heart, and finding him stiff and cold, shook her head, and offered her domino box for a coffin.

"Put him in the oven, and maybe he will get warm and revive," said Amy hopefully.

"He's  been  starved,  and  he  shan't  be baked now he's dead. I'll make him a shroud, and he shall be buried in the garden, and I'll never have
another bird, never, my Pip! for I am too bad to own one," murmured Beth, sitting on the floor with her pet folded in her hands.

"The  funeral  shall be this afternoon, and we will all go. Now, don't cry, Bethy. It's a pity, but nothing goes right this week, and Pip has had
the  worst  of  the  experiment.  Make the shroud, and lay him in my box, and after the dinner party, we'll have a nice little funeral," said Jo,
beginning to feel as if she had undertaken a good deal.

Leaving the others to console Beth, she departed to the kitchen, which was in a most discouraging state of confusion. Putting on a big apron, she
fell to work and got the dishes piled up ready for washing, when she discovered that the fire was out.

"Here's a sweet prospect!" muttered Jo, slamming the stove door open, and poking vigorously among the cinders.

Having  rekindled  the fire, she thought she would go to market while the water heated. The walk revived her spirits, and flattering herself that
she  had  made  good  bargains,  she  trudged  home  again,  after  buying  a  very young lobster, some very old asparagus, and two boxes of acid
strawberries.  By  the  time  she  got  cleared up, the dinner arrived and the stove was red-hot. Hannah had left a pan of bread to rise, Meg had
worked it up early, set it on the hearth for a second rising, and forgotten it. Meg was entertaining Sallie Gardiner in the parlor, when the door
flew open and a floury, crocky, flushed, and disheveled figure appeared, demanding tartly . . .

"I say, isn't bread 'riz' enough when it runs over the pans?"

Sallie  began  to  laugh, but Meg nodded and lifted her eyebrows as high as they would go, which caused the apparition to vanish and put the sour
bread  into  the  oven  without  further  delay. Mrs. March went out, after peeping here and there to see how matters went, also saying a word of
comfort  to  Beth,  who  sat making a winding sheet, while the dear departed lay in state in the domino box. A strange sense of helplessness fell
upon  the  girls  as  the gray bonnet vanished round the corner, and despair seized them when a few minutes later Miss Crocker appeared, and said
she'd  come  to  dinner. Now this lady was a thin, yellow spinster, with a sharp nose and inquisitive eyes, who saw everything and gossiped about
all  she  saw. They disliked her, but had been taught to be kind to her, simply because she was old and poor and had few friends. So Meg gave her
the easy chair and tried to entertain her, while she asked questions, critsized everything, and told stories of the people whom she knew.

Language  cannot  describe  the  anxieties,  experiences,  and  exertions  which Jo underwent that morning, and the dinner she served up became a
standing  joke. Fearing to ask any more advice, she did her best alone, and discovered that something more than energy and good will is necessary
to  make  a  cook.  She  boiled the asparagus for an hour and was grieved to find the heads cooked off and the stalks harder than ever. The bread
burned  black;  for the salad dressing so aggravated her that she could not make it fit to eat. The lobster was a scarlet mystery to her, but she
hammered  and  poked till it was unshelled and its meager proportions concealed in a grove of lettuce leaves. The potatoes had to be hurried, not
to  keep the asparagus waiting, and were not done at the last. The blanc mange was lumpy, and the strawberries not as ripe as they looked, having
been skilfully 'deaconed'.

"Well, they can eat beef and bread and butter, if they are hungry, only it's mortifying to have to spend your whole morning for nothing," thought
Jo,  as  she  rang  the  bell  half  an  hour  later than usual, and stood, hot, tired, and dispirited, surveying the feast spread before Laurie,
accustomed to all sorts of elegance, and Miss Crocker, whose tattling tongue would report them far and wide.

Poor  Jo  would  gladly have gone under the table, as one thing after another was tasted and left, while Amy giggled, Meg looked distressed, Miss
Crocker pursed her lips, and Laurie talked and laughed with all his might to give a cheerful tone to the festive scene. Jo's one strong point was
the  fruit,  for  she  had  sugared  it well, and had a pitcher of rich cream to eat with it. Her hot cheeks cooled a trifle, and she drew a long
breath  as the pretty glass plates went round, and everyone looked graciously at the little rosy islands floating in a sea of cream. Miss Crocker
tasted  first,  made a wry face, and drank some water hastily. Jo, who refused, thinking there might not be enough, for they dwindled sadly after
the  picking over, glanced at Laurie, but he was eating away manfully, though there was a slight pucker about his mouth and he kept his eye fixed
on his plate. Amy, who was fond of delicate fare, took a heaping spoonful, choked, hid her face in her napkin, and left the table precipitately.

"Oh, what is it?" exclaimed Jo, trembling.

"Salt instead of sugar, and the cream is sour," replied Meg with a tragic gesture.

Jo  uttered  a groan and fell back in her chair, remembering that she had given a last hasty powdering to the berries out of one of the two boxes
on  the  kitchen  table,  and  had neglected to put the milk in the refrigerator. She turned scarlet and was on the verge of crying, when she met
Laurie's  eyes,  which  would look merry in spite of his heroic efforts. The comical side of the affair suddenly struck her, and she laughed till
the  tears  ran  down  her cheeks. So did everyone else, even 'Croaker' as the girls called the old lady, and the unfortunate dinner ended gaily,
with bread and butter, olives and fun.

"I  haven't  strength  of  mind  enough to clear up now, so we will sober ourselves with a funeral," said Jo, as they rose, and Miss Crocker made
ready to go, being eager to tell the new story at another friend's dinner table.

They  did  sober  themselves  for  Beth's  sake.  Laurie dug a grave under the ferns in the grove, little Pip was laid in, with many tears by his
tender-hearted mistress, and covered with moss, while a wreath of violets and chickweed was hung on the stone which bore his epitaph, composed by
Jo while she struggled with the dinner.

Here lies Pip March, Who died the 7th of June; Loved and lamented sore, And not forgotten soon.

At  the conclusion of the ceremonies, Beth retired to her room, overcome with emotion and lobster, but there was no place of repose, for the beds
were  not made, and she found her grief much assuaged by beating up the pillows and putting things in order. Meg helped Jo clear away the remains
of the feast, which took half the afternoon and left them so tired that they agreed to be contented with tea and toast for supper.

Laurie  took  Amy to drive, which was a deed of charity, for the sour cream seemed to have had a bad effect upon her temper. Mrs. March came home
to find the three older girls hard at work in the middle of the afternoon, and a glance at the closet gave her an idea of the success of one part
of the experiment.

Before  the  housewives could rest, several people called, and there was a scramble to get ready to see them. Then tea must be got, errands done,
and  one or two necessary bits of sewing neglected until the last minute. As twilight fell, dewy and still, one by one they gathered on the porch
where the June roses were budding beautifully, and each groaned or sighed as she sat down, as if tired or troubled.

"What a dreadful day this has been!" began Jo, usually the first to speak.

"It has seemed shorter than usual, but so uncomfortable," said Meg.

"Not a bit like home," added Amy.

"It can't seem so without Marmee and little Pip," sighed Beth, glancing with full eyes at the empty cage above her head.

"Here's Mother, dear, and you shall have another bird tomorrow, if you want it."

As she spoke, Mrs. March came and took her place among them, looking as if her holiday had not been much pleasanter than theirs.

"Are  you  satisfied  with  your  experiment, girls, or do you want another week of it?" she asked, as Beth nestled up to her and the rest turned
toward her with brightening faces, as flowers turn toward the sun.

"I don't!" cried Jo decidedly.

"Nor I," echoed the others.

"You think then, that it is better to have a few duties and live a little for others, do you?"

"Lounging and larking doesn't pay," observed Jo, shaking her head. "I'm tired of it and mean to go to work at something right off."

"Suppose  you  learn plain cooking. That's a useful accomplishment, which no woman should be without," said Mrs. March, laughing inaudibly at the
recollection of Jo's dinner party, for she had met Miss Crocker and heard her account of it.

"Mother, did you go away and let everything be, just to see how we'd get on?" cried Meg, who had had suspicions all day.

"Yes,  I wanted you to see how the comfort of all depends on each doing her share faithfully. While Hannah and I did your work, you got on pretty
well,  though  I don't think you were very happy or amiable. So I thought, as a little lesson, I would show you what happens when everyone thinks
only  of  herself.  Don't you feel that it is pleasanter to help one another, to have daily duties which make leisure sweet when it comes, and to
bear and forbear, that home may be comfortable and lovely to us all?"

"We do, Mother, we do!" cried the girls.

"Then let me advise you to take up your little burdens again, for though they seem heavy sometimes, they are good for us, and lighten as we learn
to  carry  them.  Work  is  wholesome, and there is plenty for everyone. It keeps us from ennui and mischief, is good for health and spirits, and
gives us a sense of power and independence better than money or fashion."

"We'll  work  like  bees,  and love it too, see if we don't," said Jo. "I'll learn plain cooking for my holiday task, and the next dinner party I
have shall be a success."

"I'll  make  the  set  of  shirts for father, instead of letting you do it, Marmee. I can and I will, though I'm not fond of sewing. That will be
better than fussing over my own things, which are plenty nice enough as they are." said Meg.

"I'll  do  my lessons every day, and not spend so much time with my music and dolls. I am a stupid thing, and ought to be studying, not playing,"
was  Beth's  resolution,  while Amy followed their example by heroically declaring, "I shall learn to make buttonholes, and attend to my parts of
speech."

"Very  good! Then I am quite satisfied with the experiment, and fancy that we shall not have to repeat it, only don't go to the other extreme and
delve  like slaves. Have regular hours for work and play, make each day both useful and pleasant, and prove that you understand the worth of time
by employing it well. Then youth will be delightful, old age will bring few regrets, and life become a beautiful success, in spite of poverty."

"We'll remember, Mother!" and they did.



CHAPTER TWELVE

CAMP LAURENCE

Beth  was  postmistress,  for, being most at home, she could attend to it regularly, and dearly liked the daily task of unlocking the little door
and  distributing  the  mail.  One  July day she came in with her hands full, and went about the house leaving letters and parcels like the penny
post.

"Here's  your  posy, Mother! Laurie never forgets that," she said, putting the fresh nosegay in the vase that stood in 'Marmee's corner', and was
kept supplied by the affectionate boy.

"Miss Meg March, one letter and a glove," continued Beth, delivering the articles to her sister, who sat near her mother, stitching wristbands.

"Why, I left a pair over there, and here is only one," said Meg, looking at the gray cotton glove. "Didn't you drop the other in the garden?"

"No, I'm sure I didn't, for there was only one in the office."

"I  hate  to have odd gloves! Never mind, the other may be found. My letter is only a translation of the German song I wanted. I think Mr. Brooke
did it, for this isn't Laurie's writing."

Mrs.  March  glanced  at Meg, who was looking very pretty in her gingham morning gown, with the little curls blowing about her forehead, and very
womanly, as she sat sewing at her little worktable, full of tidy white rolls, so unconscious of the thought in her mother's mind as she sewed and
sang,  while her fingers flew and her thoughts were busied with girlish fancies as innocent and fresh as the pansies in her belt, that Mrs. March
smiled and was satisfied.

"Two  letters for Doctor Jo, a book, and a funny old hat, which covered the whole post office and stuck outside," said Beth, laughing as she went
into the study where Jo sat writing.

"What a sly fellow Laurie is! I said I wished bigger hats were the fashion, because I burn my face every hot day. He said, 'Why mind the fashion?
Wear  a big hat, and be comfortable!' I said I would if I had one, and he has sent me this, to try me. I'll wear it for fun, and show him I don't
care for the fashion." And hanging the antique broad-brim on a bust of Plato, Jo read her letters.

One from her mother made her cheeks glow and her eyes fill, for it said to her . . .


My Dear:

I  write  a  little  word  to tell you with how much satisfaction I watch your efforts to control your temper. You say nothing about your trials,
failures,  or successes, and think, perhaps, that no one sees them but the Friend whose help you daily ask, if I may trust the well-worn cover of
your guidebook. I, too, have seen them all, and heartily believe in the sincerity of your resolution, since it begins to bear fruit. Go on, dear,
patiently and bravely, and always believe that no one sympathizes more tenderly with you than your loving . . .

Mother


"That  does  me good! That's worth millions of money and pecks of praise. Oh, Marmee, I do try! I will keep on trying, and not get tired, since I
have you to help me."

Laying her head on her arms, Jo wet her little romance with a few happy tears, for she had thought that no one saw and appreciated her efforts to
be  good,  and this assurance was doubly precious, doubly encouraging, because unexpected and from the person whose commendation she most valued.
Feeling  stronger  than ever to meet and subdue her Apollyon, she pinned the note inside her frock, as a shield and a reminder, lest she be taken
unaware, and proceeded to open her other letter, quite ready for either good or bad news. In a big, dashing hand, Laurie wrote . . .

Dear Jo, What ho!

Some  english  girls  and  boys  are  coming  to  see  me  tomorrow  and I want to have a jolly time. If it's fine, I'm going to pitch my tent in
Longmeadow,  and  row  up  the  whole  crew  to lunch and croquet--have a fire, make messes, gypsy fashion, and all sorts of larks. They are nice
people,  and  like such things. Brooke will go to keep us boys steady, and Kate Vaughn will play propriety for the girls. I want you all to come,
can't  let  Beth  off  at  any price, and nobody shall worry her. Don't bother about rations, I'll see to that and everything else, only do come,
there's a good fellow!

In a tearing hurry, Yours ever, Laurie.

"Here's richness!" cried Jo, flying in to tell the news to Meg.

"Of course we can go, Mother? It will be such a help to Laurie, for I can row, and Meg see to the lunch, and the children be useful in some way."

"I hope the Vaughns are not fine grown-up people. Do you know anything about them, Jo?" asked Meg.

"Only  that  there  are four of them. Kate is older than you, Fred and Frank (twins) about my age, and a little girl (Grace), who is nine or ten.
Laurie  knew  them  abroad,  and  liked  the boys. I fancied, from the way he primmed up his mouth in speaking of her, that he didn't admire Kate
much."

"I'm so glad my French print is clean, it's just the thing and so becoming!" observed Meg complacently. "Have you anything decent, Jo?"

"Scarlet and gray boating suit, good enough for me. I shall row and tramp about, so I don't want any starch to think of. You'll come, Betty?"

"If you won't let any boys talk to me."

"Not a boy!"

"I like to please Laurie, and I'm not afraid of Mr. Brooke, he is so kind. But I don't want to play, or sing, or say anything. I'll work hard and
not trouble anyone, and you'll take care of me, Jo, so I'll go."

"That's  my good girl. You do try to fight off your shyness, and I love you for it. Fighting faults isn't easy, as I know, and a cheery word kind
of  gives  a lift. Thank you, Mother," And Jo gave the thin cheek a grateful kiss, more precious to Mrs. March than if it had given back the rosy
roundness of her youth.

"I had a box of chocolate drops, and the picture I wanted to copy," said Amy, showing her mail.

"And  I  got a note from Mr. Laurence, asking me to come over and play to him tonight, before the lamps are lighted, and I shall go," added Beth,
whose friendship with the old gentleman prospered finely.

"Now  let's  fly  round,  and  do  double duty today, so that we can play tomorrow with free minds," said Jo, preparing to replace her pen with a
broom.

When  the  sun  peeped into the girls' room early next morning to promise them a fine day, he saw a comical sight. Each had made such preparation
for  the  fete  as  seemed  necessary  and  proper.  Meg had an extra row of little curlpapers across her forehead, Jo had copiously anointed her
afflicted  face  with cold cream, Beth had taken Joanna to bed with her to atone for the approaching separation, and Amy had capped the climax by
putting  a  clothespin on her nose to uplift the offending feature. It was one of the kind artists use to hold the paper on their drawing boards,
therefore  quite appropriate and effective for the purpose it was now being put. This funny spectacle appeared to amuse the sun, for he burst out
with such radiance that Jo woke up and roused her sisters by a hearty laugh at Amy's ornament.

Sunshine  and  laughter  were  good  omens  for  a pleasure party, and soon a lively bustle began in both houses. Beth, who was ready first, kept
reporting what went on next door, and enlivened her sisters' toilets by frequent telegrams from the window.

"There goes the man with the tent! I see Mrs. Barker doing up the lunch in a hamper and a great basket. Now Mr. Laurence is looking up at the sky
and  the  weathercock. I wish he would go too. There's Laurie, looking like a sailor, nice boy! Oh, mercy me! Here's a carriage full of people, a
tall  lady,  a  little girl, and two dreadful boys. One is lame, poor thing, he's got a crutch. Laurie didn't tell us that. Be quick, girls! It's
getting late. Why, there is Ned Moffat, I do declare. Meg, isn't that the man who bowed to you one day when we were shopping?"

"So it is. How queer that he should come. I thought he was at the mountains. There is Sallie. I'm glad she got back in time. Am I all right, Jo?"
cried Meg in a flutter.

"A  regular  daisy. Hold up your dress and put your hat on straight, it looks sentimental tipped that way and will fly off at the first puff. Now
then, come on!"

"Oh, Jo, you are not going to wear that awful hat? It's too absurd! You shall not make a guy of yourself," remonstrated Meg, as Jo tied down with
a red ribbon the broad-brimmed, old-fashioned leghorn Laurie had sent for a joke.

"I  just  will, though, for it's capital, so shady, light, and big. It will make fun, and I don't mind being a guy if I'm comfortable." With that
Jo  marched  straight away and the rest followed, a bright little band of sisters, all looking their best in summer suits, with happy faces under
the jaunty hatbrims.

Laurie  ran to meet and present them to his friends in the most cordial manner. The lawn was the reception room, and for several minutes a lively
scene  was enacted there. Meg was grateful to see that Miss Kate, though twenty, was dressed with a simplicity which American girls would do well
to  imitate,  and  who  was  much  flattered by Mr. Ned's assurances that he came especially to see her. Jo understood why Laurie 'primmed up his
mouth' when speaking of Kate, for that young lady had a standoff-don't-touch-me air, which contrasted strongly with the free and easy demeanor of
the  other girls. Beth took an observation of the new boys and decided that the lame one was not 'dreadful', but gentle and feeble, and she would
be kind to him on that account. Amy found Grace a well-mannered, merry, little person, and after staring dumbly at one another for a few minutes,
they suddenly became very good friends.

Tents,  lunch,  and  croquet utensils having been sent on beforehand, the party was soon embarked, and the two boats pushed off together, leaving
Mr.  Laurence  waving  his hat on the shore. Laurie and Jo rowed one boat, Mr. Brooke and Ned the other, while Fred Vaughn, the riotous twin, did
his  best to upset both by paddling about in a wherry like a disturbed water bug. Jo's funny hat deserved a vote of thanks, for it was of general
utility.  It  broke  the  ice  in the beginning by producing a laugh, it created quite a refreshing breeze, flapping to and fro as she rowed, and
would make an excellent umbrella for the whole party, if a shower came up, she said. Miss Kate decided that she was 'odd', but rather clever, and
smiled upon her from afar.

Meg,  in  the  other  boat,  was delightfully situated, face to face with the rowers, who both admired the prospect and feathered their oars with
uncommon  'skill  and  dexterity'.  Mr.  Brooke was a grave, silent young man, with handsome brown eyes and a pleasant voice. Meg liked his quiet
manners  and  considered  him  a walking encyclopedia of useful knowledge. He never talked to her much, but he looked at her a good deal, and she
felt  sure  that  he did not regard her with aversion. Ned, being in college, of course put on all the airs which freshmen think it their bounden
duty  to  assume.  He  was  not  very  wise,  but very good-natured, and altogether an excellent person to carry on a picnic. Sallie Gardiner was
absorbed in keeping her white pique dress clean and chattering with the ubiquitous Fred, who kept Beth in constant terror by his pranks.

It  was  not  far to Longmeadow, but the tent was pitched and the wickets down by the time they arrived. A pleasant green field, with three wide-
spreading oaks in the middle and a smooth strip of turf for croquet.

"Welcome to Camp Laurence!" said the young host, as they landed with exclamations of delight.

"Brooke  is commander in chief, I am commissary general, the other fellows are staff officers, and you, ladies, are company. The tent is for your
especial benefit and that oak is your drawing room, this is the messroom and the third is the camp kitchen. Now, let's have a game before it gets
hot, and then we'll see about dinner."

Frank,  Beth,  Amy, and Grace sat down to watch the game played by the other eight. Mr. Brooke chose Meg, Kate, and Fred. Laurie took Sallie, Jo,
and  Ned.  The  English  played well, but the Americans played better, and contested every inch of the ground as strongly as if the spirit of '76
inspired them. Jo and Fred had several skirmishes and once narrowly escaped high words. Jo was through the last wicket and had missed the stroke,
which  failure  ruffled  her a good deal. Fred was close behind her and his turn came before hers. He gave a stroke, his ball hit the wicket, and
stopped  an  inch  on  the wrong side. No one was very near, and running up to examine, he gave it a sly nudge with his toe, which put it just an
inch on the right side.

"I'm through! Now, Miss Jo, I'll settle you, and get in first," cried the young gentleman, swinging his mallet for another blow.

"You pushed it. I saw you. It's my turn now," said Jo sharply.

"Upon my word, I didn't move it. It rolled a bit, perhaps, but that is allowed. So, stand off please, and let me have a go at the stake."

"We don't cheat in America, but you can, if you choose," said Jo angrily.

"Yankees are a deal the most tricky, everybody knows. There you go!" returned Fred, croqueting her ball far away.

Jo  opened  her  lips  to say something rude, but checked herself in time, colored up to her forehead and stood a minute, hammering down a wicket
with  all  her  might,  while Fred hit the stake and declared himself out with much exultation. She went off to get her ball, and was a long time
finding  it  among  the  bushes,  but she came back, looking cool and quiet, and waited her turn patiently. It took several strokes to regain the
place she had lost, and when she got there, the other side had nearly won, for Kate's ball was the last but one and lay near the stake.

"By George, it's all up with us! Goodbye, Kate. Miss Jo owes me one, so you are finished," cried Fred excitedly, as they all drew near to see the
finish.

"Yankees  have  a trick of being generous to their enemies," said Jo, with a look that made the lad redden, "especially when they beat them," she
added, as, leaving Kate's ball untouched, she won the game by a clever stroke.

Laurie  threw  up  his hat, then remembered that it wouldn't do to exult over the defeat of his guests, and stopped in the middle of the cheer to
whisper to his friend, "Good for you, Jo! He did cheat, I saw him. We can't tell him so, but he won't do it again, take my word for it."

Meg drew her aside, under pretense of pinning up a loose braid, and said approvingly, "It was dreadfully provoking, but you kept your temper, and
I'm so glad, Jo."

"Don't  praise me, Meg, for I could box his ears this minute. I should certainly have boiled over if I hadn't stayed among the nettles till I got
my  rage  under  control  enough  to hold my tongue. It's simmering now, so I hope he'll keep out of my way," returned Jo, biting her lips as she
glowered at Fred from under her big hat.

"Time  for  lunch,"  said  Mr.  Brooke,  looking  at his watch. "Commissary general, will you make the fire and get water, while Miss March, Miss
Sallie, and I spread the table? Who can make good coffee?"

"Jo  can," said Meg, glad to recommend her sister. So Jo, feeling that her late lessons in cookery were to do her honor, went to preside over the
coffeepot,  while  the  children collected dry sticks, and the boys made a fire and got water from a spring near by. Miss Kate sketched and Frank
talked to Beth, who was making little mats of braided rushes to serve as plates.

The  commander in chief and his aides soon spread the tablecloth with an inviting array of eatables and drinkables, prettily decorated with green
leaves.  Jo  announced  that  the coffee was ready, and everyone settled themselves to a hearty meal, for youth is seldom dyspeptic, and exercise
develops  wholesome  appetites.  A  very  merry  lunch  it  was, for everything seemed fresh and funny, and frequent peals of laughter startled a
venerable  horse who fed near by. There was a pleasing inequality in the table, which produced many mishaps to cups and plates, acorns dropped in
the  milk,  little  black ants partook of the refreshments without being invited, and fuzzy caterpillars swung down from the tree to see what was
going  on.  Three  white-headed children peeped over the fence, and an objectionable dog barked at them from the other side of the river with all
his might and main.

"There's salt here," said Laurie, as he handed Jo a saucer of berries.

"Thank  you,  I  prefer  spiders," she replied, fishing up two unwary little ones who had gone to a creamy death. "How dare you remind me of that
horrid dinner party, when yours is so nice in every way?" added Jo, as they both laughed and ate out of one plate, the china having run short.

"I  had  an  uncommonly good time that day, and haven't got over it yet. This is no credit to me, you know, I don't do anything. It's you and Meg
and  Brooke  who make it all go, and I'm no end obliged to you. What shall we do when we can't eat anymore?" asked Laurie, feeling that his trump
card had been played when lunch was over.

"Have  games  till  it's cooler. I brought Authors, and I dare say Miss Kate knows something new and nice. Go and ask her. She's company, and you
ought to stay with her more."

"Aren't  you company too? I thought she'd suit Brooke, but he keeps talking to Meg, and Kate just stares at them through that ridiculous glass of
hers. I'm going, so you needn't try to preach propriety, for you can't do it, Jo."

Miss Kate did know several new games, and as the girls would not, and the boys could not, eat any more, they all adjourned to the drawing room to
play Rig-marole.

"One  person  begins a story, any nonsense you like, and tells as long as he pleases, only taking care to stop short at some exciting point, when
the  next  takes  it  up  and  does the same. It's very funny when well done, and makes a perfect jumble of tragical comical stuff to laugh over.
Please  start  it,  Mr.  Brooke,"  said Kate, with a commanding air, which surprised Meg, who treated the tutor with as much respect as any other
gentleman.

Lying  on  the grass at the feet of the two young ladies, Mr. Brooke obediently began the story, with the handsome brown eyes steadily fixed upon
the sunshiny river.

"Once on a time, a knight went out into the world to seek his fortune, for he had nothing but his sword and his shield. He traveled a long while,
nearly  eight-and-twenty  years, and had a hard time of it, till he came to the palace of a good old king, who had offered a reward to anyone who
could  tame  and  train a fine but unbroken colt, of which he was very fond. The knight agreed to try, and got on slowly but surely, for the colt
was  a  gallant fellow, and soon learned to love his new master, though he was freakish and wild. Every day, when he gave his lessons to this pet
of  the  king's,  the knight rode him through the city, and as he rode, he looked everywhere for a certain beautiful face, which he had seen many
times in his dreams, but never found. One day, as he went prancing down a quiet street, he saw at the window of a ruinous castle the lovely face.
He  was  delighted,  inquired who lived in this old castle, and was told that several captive princesses were kept there by a spell, and spun all
day  to  lay  up  money to buy their liberty. The knight wished intensely that he could free them, but he was poor and could only go by each day,
watching for the sweet face and longing to see it out in the sunshine. At last he resolved to get into the castle and ask how he could help them.
He went and knocked. The great door flew open, and he beheld . . ."

"A  ravishingly  lovely  lady, who exclaimed, with a cry of rapture, 'At last! At last!'" continued Kate, who had read French novels, and admired
the style. "'Tis she!' cried Count Gustave, and fell at her feet in an ecstasy of joy. 'Oh, rise!' she said, extending a hand of marble fairness.
'Never!  Till you tell me how I may rescue you,' swore the knight, still kneeling. 'Alas, my cruel fate condemns me to remain here till my tyrant
is  destroyed.' 'Where is the villain?' 'In the mauve salon. Go, brave heart, and save me from despair.' 'I obey, and return victorious or dead!'
With these thrilling words he rushed away, and flinging open the door of the mauve salon, was about to enter, when he received . . ."

"A  stunning  blow  from  the  big  Greek  lexicon,  which an old fellow in a black gown fired at him," said Ned. "Instantly, Sir What's-his-name
recovered  himself,  pitched  the  tyrant out of the window, and turned to join the lady, victorious, but with a bump on his brow, found the door
locked,  tore up the curtains, made a rope ladder, got halfway down when the ladder broke, and he went headfirst into the moat, sixty feet below.
Could  swim  like  a duck, paddled round the castle till he came to a little door guarded by two stout fellows, knocked their heads together till
they  cracked  like  a  couple  of nuts, then, by a trifling exertion of his prodigious strength, he smashed in the door, went up a pair of stone
steps  covered  with  dust a foot thick, toads as big as your fist, and spiders that would frighten you into hysterics, Miss March. At the top of
these steps he came plump upon a sight that took his breath away and chilled his blood . . ."

"A  tall figure, all in white with a veil over its face and a lamp in its wasted hand," went on Meg. "It beckoned, gliding noiselessly before him
down  a  corridor as dark and cold as any tomb. Shadowy effigies in armor stood on either side, a dead silence reigned, the lamp burned blue, and
the  ghostly  figure ever and anon turned its face toward him, showing the glitter of awful eyes through its white veil. They reached a curtained
door,  behind  which sounded lovely music. He sprang forward to enter, but the specter plucked him back, and waved threateningly before him a . .
."

"Snuffbox,"  said  Jo,  in  a sepulchral tone, which convulsed the audience. "'Thankee,' said the knight politely, as he took a pinch and sneezed
seven  times  so  violently that his head fell off. 'Ha! Ha!' laughed the ghost, and having peeped through the keyhole at the princesses spinning
away  for  dear  life, the evil spirit picked up her victim and put him in a large tin box, where there were eleven other knights packed together
without their heads, like sardines, who all rose and began to . . ."

"Dance  a hornpipe," cut in Fred, as Jo paused for breath, "and, as they danced, the rubbishy old castle turned to a man-of-war in full sail. 'Up
with the jib, reef the tops'l halliards, helm hard alee, and man the guns!' roared the captain, as a Portuguese pirate hove in sight, with a flag
black as ink flying from her foremast. 'Go in and win, my hearties!' says the captain, and a tremendous fight began. Of course the British beat--
they always do."

"No, they don't!" cried Jo, aside.

"Having taken the pirate captain prisoner, sailed slap over the schooner, whose decks were piled high with dead and whose lee scuppers ran blood,
for  the  order  had  been  'Cutlasses,  and die hard!' 'Bosun's mate, take a bight of the flying-jib sheet, and start this villain if he doesn't
confess his sins double quick,' said the British captain. The Portuguese held his tongue like a brick, and walked the plank, while the jolly tars
cheered  like mad. But the sly dog dived, came up under the man-of-war, scuttled her, and down she went, with all sail set, 'To the bottom of the
sea, sea, sea' where . . ."

"Oh,  gracious!  What  shall  I  say?" cried Sallie, as Fred ended his rigmarole, in which he had jumbled together pell-mell nautical phrases and
facts out of one of his favorite books. "Well, they went to the bottom, and a nice mermaid welcomed them, but was much grieved on finding the box
of headless knights, and kindly pickled them in brine, hoping to discover the mystery about them, for being a woman, she was curious. By-and-by a
diver  came down, and the mermaid said, 'I'll give you a box of pearls if you can take it up,' for she wanted to restore the poor things to life,
and couldn't raise the heavy load herself. So the diver hoisted it up, and was much disappointed on opening it to find no pearls. He left it in a
great lonely field, where it was found by a . . ."

"Little  goose girl, who kept a hundred fat geese in the field," said Amy, when Sallie's invention gave out. "The little girl was sorry for them,
and  asked  an old woman what she should do to help them. 'Your geese will tell you, they know everything.' said the old woman. So she asked what
she should use for new heads, since the old ones were lost, and all the geese opened their hundred mouths and screamed . . ."

"'Cabbages!'"  continued Laurie promptly. "'Just the thing,' said the girl, and ran to get twelve fine ones from her garden. She put them on, the
knights revived at once, thanked her, and went on their way rejoicing, never knowing the difference, for there were so many other heads like them
in  the  world  that  no  one  thought  anything of it. The knight in whom I'm interested went back to find the pretty face, and learned that the
princesses  had spun themselves free and all gone and married, but one. He was in a great state of mind at that, and mounting the colt, who stood
by  him  through  thick  and thin, rushed to the castle to see which was left. Peeping over the hedge, he saw the queen of his affections picking
flowers  in  her garden. 'Will you give me a rose?' said he. 'You must come and get it. I can't come to you, it isn't proper,' said she, as sweet
as  honey.  He  tried  to  climb  over the hedge, but it seemed to grow higher and higher. Then he tried to push through, but it grew thicker and
thicker, and he was in despair. So he patiently broke twig after twig till he had made a little hole through which he peeped, saying imploringly,
'Let  me  in! Let me in!' But the pretty princess did not seem to understand, for she picked her roses quietly, and left him to fight his way in.
Whether he did or not, Frank will tell you."

"I can't. I'm not playing, I never do," said Frank, dismayed at the sentimental predicament out of which he was to rescue the absurd couple. Beth
had disappeared behind Jo, and Grace was asleep.

"So  the  poor  knight is to be left sticking in the hedge, is he?" asked Mr. Brooke, still watching the river, and playing with the wild rose in
his buttonhole.

"I guess the princess gave him a posy, and opened the gate after a while," said Laurie, smiling to himself, as he threw acorns at his tutor.

"What a piece of nonsense we have made! With practice we might do something quite clever. Do you know Truth?"

"I hope so," said Meg soberly.

"The game, I mean?"

"What is it?" said Fred.

"Why,  you pile up your hands, choose a number, and draw out in turn, and the person who draws at the number has to answer truly any question put
by the rest. It's great fun."

"Let's try it," said Jo, who liked new experiments.

Miss Kate and Mr. Brooke, Meg, and Ned declined, but Fred, Sallie, Jo, and Laurie piled and drew, and the lot fell to Laurie.

"Who are your heroes?" asked Jo.

"Grandfather and Napoleon."

"Which lady here do you think prettiest?" said Sallie.

"Margaret."

"Which do you like best?" from Fred.

"Jo, of course."

"What silly questions you ask!" And Jo gave a disdainful shrug as the rest laughed at Laurie's matter-of-fact tone.

"Try again. Truth isn't a bad game," said Fred.

"It's a very good one for you," retorted Jo in a low voice. Her turn came next.

"What is your greatest fault?" asked Fred, by way of testing in her the virtue he lacked himself.

"A quick temper."

"What do you most wish for?" said Laurie.

"A pair of boot lacings," returned Jo, guessing and defeating his purpose.

"Not a true answer. You must say what you really do want most."

"Genius. Don't you wish you could give it to me, Laurie?" And she slyly smiled in his disappointed face.

"What virtues do you most admire in a man?" asked Sallie.

"Courage and honesty."

"Now my turn," said Fred, as his hand came last.

"Let's give it to him," whispered Laurie to Jo, who nodded and asked at once . . .

"Didn't you cheat at croquet?"

"Well, yes, a little bit."

"Good! Didn't you take your story out of _The Sea Lion?_" said Laurie.

"Rather."

"Don't you think the English nation perfect in every respect?" asked Sallie.

"I should be ashamed of myself if I didn't."

"He's  a  true John Bull. Now, Miss Sallie, you shall have a chance without waiting to draw. I'll harrrow up your feelings first by asking if you
don't think you are something of a flirt," said Laurie, as Jo nodded to Fred as a sign that peace was declared.

"You impertinent boy! Of course I'm not," exclaimed Sallie, with an air that proved the contrary.

"What do you hate most?" asked Fred.

"Spiders and rice pudding."

"What do you like best?" asked Jo.

"Dancing and French gloves."

"Well, I think Truth is a very silly play. Let's have a sensible game of Authors to refresh our minds," proposed Jo.

Ned,  Frank, and the little girls joined in this, and while it went on, the three elders sat apart, talking. Miss Kate took out her sketch again,
and Margaret watched her, while Mr. Brooke lay on the grass with a book, which he did not read.

"How beautifully you do it! I wish I could draw," said Meg, with mingled admiration and regret in her voice.

"Why don't you learn? I should think you had taste and talent for it," replied Miss Kate graciously.

"I haven't time."

"Your  mamma  prefers  other  accomplishments, I fancy. So did mine, but I proved to her that I had talent by taking a few lessons privately, and
then she was quite willing I should go on. Can't you do the same with your governess?"

"I have none."

"I  forgot  young  ladies  in  America  go  to  school  more than with us. Very fine schools they are, too, Papa says. You go to a private one, I
suppose?"

"I don't go at all. I am a governess myself."

"Oh,  indeed!"  said Miss Kate, but she might as well have said, "Dear me, how dreadful!" for her tone implied it, and something in her face made
Meg color, and wish she had not been so frank.

Mr.  Brooke  looked up and said quickly, "Young ladies in America love independence as much as their ancestors did, and are admired and respected
for supporting themselves."

"Oh,  yes,  of  course  it's  very nice and proper in them to do so. We have many most respectable and worthy young women who do the same and are
employed  by  the  nobility,  because, being the daughters of gentlemen, they are both well bred and accomplished, you know," said Miss Kate in a
patronizing tone that hurt Meg's pride, and made her work seem not only more distasteful, but degrading.

"Did the German song suit, Miss March?" inquired Mr. Brooke, breaking an awkward pause.

"Oh, yes! It was very sweet, and I'm much obliged to whoever translated it for me." And Meg's downcast face brightened as she spoke.

"Don't you read German?" asked Miss Kate with a look of surprise.

"Not very well. My father, who taught me, is away, and I don't get on very fast alone, for I've no one to correct my pronunciation."

"Try  a  little  now.  Here  is  Schiller's Mary Stuart and a tutor who loves to teach." And Mr. Brooke laid his book on her lap with an inviting
smile.

"It's so hard I'm afraid to try," said Meg, grateful, but bashful in the presence of the accomplished young lady beside her.

"I'll  read  a  bit  to encourage you." And Miss Kate read one of the most beautiful passages in a perfectly correct but perfectly expressionless
manner.

Mr. Brooke made no comment as she returned the book to Meg, who said innocently, "I thought it was poetry."

"Some of it is. Try this passage."

There was a queer smile about Mr. Brooke's mouth as he opened at poor Mary's lament.

Meg obediently following the long grass-blade which her new tutor used to point with, read slowly and timidly, unconsciously making poetry of the
hard  words by the soft intonation of her musical voice. Down the page went the green guide, and presently, forgetting her listener in the beauty
of  the sad scene, Meg read as if alone, giving a little touch of tragedy to the words of the unhappy queen. If she had seen the brown eyes then,
she would have stopped short, but she never looked up, and the lesson was not spoiled for her.

"Very well indeed!" said Mr. Brooke, as she paused, quite ignoring her many mistakes, and looking as if he did indeed love to teach.

Miss Kate put up her glass, and, having taken a survey of the little tableau before her, shut her sketch book, saying with condescension, "You've
a  nice accent and in time will be a clever reader. I advise you to learn, for German is a valuable accomplishment to teachers. I must look after
Grace, she is romping." And Miss Kate strolled away, adding to herself with a shrug, "I didn't come to chaperone a governess, though she is young
and pretty. What odd people these Yankees are. I'm afraid Laurie will be quite spoiled among them."

"I  forgot  that  English people rather turn up their noses at governesses and don't treat them as we do," said Meg, looking after the retreating
figure with an annoyed expression.

"Tutors  also  have rather a hard time of it there, as I know to my sorrow. There's no place like America for us workers, Miss Margaret." And Mr.
Brooke looked so contented and cheerful that Meg was ashamed to lament her hard lot.

"I'm  glad I live in it then. I don't like my work, but I get a good deal of satisfaction out of it after all, so I won't complain. I only wished
I liked teaching as you do."

"I  think  you  would  if you had Laurie for a pupil. I shall be very sorry to lose him next year," said Mr. Brooke, busily punching holes in the
turf.

"Going to college, I suppose?" Meg's lips asked the question, but her eyes added, "And what becomes of you?"

"Yes, it's high time he went, for he is ready, and as soon as he is off, I shall turn soldier. I am needed."

"I  am  glad of that!" exclaimed Meg. "I should think every young man would want to go, though it is hard for the mothers and sisters who stay at
home," she added sorrowfully.

"I  have  neither,  and  very few friends to care whether I live or die," said Mr. Brooke rather bitterly as he absently put the dead rose in the
hole he had made and covered it up, like a little grave.

"Laurie and his grandfather would care a great deal, and we should all be very sorry to have any harm happen to you," said Meg heartily.

"Thank  you,  that  sounds  pleasant,"  began  Mr. Brooke, looking cheerful again, but before he could finish his speech, Ned, mounted on the old
horse, came lumbering up to display his equestrian skill before the young ladies, and there was no more quiet that day.

"Don't you love to ride?" asked Grace of Amy, as they stood resting after a race round the field with the others, led by Ned.

"I dote upon it. My sister, Meg, used to ride when Papa was rich, but we don't keep any horses now, except Ellen Tree," added Amy, laughing.

"Tell me about Ellen Tree. Is it a donkey?" asked Grace curiously.

"Why,  you  see, Jo is crazy about horses and so am I, but we've only got an old sidesaddle and no horse. Out in our garden is an apple tree that
has  a  nice  low  branch,  so  Jo put the saddle on it, fixed some reins on the part that turns up, and we bounce away on Ellen Tree whenever we
like."

"How  funny!"  laughed Grace. "I have a pony at home, and ride nearly every day in the park with Fred and Kate. It's very nice, for my friends go
too, and the Row is full of ladies and gentlemen."

"Dear, how charming! I hope I shall go abroad some day, but I'd rather go to Rome than the Row," said Amy, who had not the remotest idea what the
Row was and wouldn't have asked for the world.

Frank,  sitting  just  behind  the little girls, heard what they were saying, and pushed his crutch away from him with an impatient gesture as he
watched  the  active lads going through all sorts of comical gymnastics. Beth, who was collecting the scattered Author cards, looked up and said,
in her shy yet friendly way, "I'm afraid you are tired. Can I do anything for you?"

"Talk to me, please. It's dull, sitting by myself," answered Frank, who had evidently been used to being made much of at home.

If he asked her to deliver a Latin oration, it would not have seemed a more impossible task to bashful Beth, but there was no place to run to, no
Jo to hide behind now, and the poor boy looked so wistfully at her that she bravely resolved to try.

"What do you like to talk about?" she asked, fumbling over the cards and dropping half as she tried to tie them up.

"Well, I like to hear about cricket and boating and hunting," said Frank, who had not yet learned to suit his amusements to his strength.

My heart! What shall I do? I don't know anything about them, thought Beth, and forgetting the boy's misfortune in her flurry, she said, hoping to
make him talk, "I never saw any hunting, but I suppose you know all about it."

"I  did  once,  but I can never hunt again, for I got hurt leaping a confounded five-barred gate, so there are no more horses and hounds for me,"
said Frank with a sigh that made Beth hate herself for her innocent blunder.

"Your  deer  are much prettier than our ugly buffaloes," she said, turning to the prairies for help and feeling glad that she had read one of the
boys' books in which Jo delighted.

Buffaloes proved soothing and satisfactory, and in her eagerness to amuse another, Beth forgot herself, and was quite unconscious of her sisters'
surprise and delight at the unusual spectacle of Beth talking away to one of the dreadful boys, against whom she had begged protection.

"Bless her heart! She pities him, so she is good to him," said Jo, beaming at her from the croquet ground.

"I always said she was a little saint," added Meg, as if there could be no further doubt of it.

"I  haven't  heard  Frank  laugh  so much for ever so long," said Grace to Amy, as they sat discussing dolls and making tea sets out of the acorn
cups.

"My  sister Beth is a very fastidious girl, when she likes to be," said Amy, well pleased at Beth's success. She meant 'facinating', but as Grace
didn't know the exact meaning of either word, fastidious sounded well and made a good impression.

An  impromptu  circus,  fox  and  geese,  and  an amicable game of croquet finished the afternoon. At sunset the tent was struck, hampers packed,
wickets  pulled  up,  boats  loaded,  and  the whole party floated down the river, singing at the tops of their voices. Ned, getting sentimental,
warbled a serenade with the pensive refrain . . .

Alone, alone, ah! Woe, alone,

and at the lines . . .

We each are young, we each have a heart, Oh, why should we stand thus coldly apart?

he looked at Meg with such a lackadiasical expression that she laughed outright and spoiled his song.

"How  can  you be so cruel to me?" he whispered, under cover of a lively chorus. "You've kept close to that starched-up Englishwoman all day, and
now you snub me."

"I didn't mean to, but you looked so funny I really couldn't help it," replied Meg, passing over the first part of his reproach, for it was quite
true that she had shunned him, remembering the Moffat party and the talk after it.

Ned was offended and turned to Sallie for consolation, saying to her rather pettishly, "There isn't a bit of flirt in that girl, is there?"

"Not a particle, but she's a dear," returned Sallie, defending her friend even while confessing her shortcomings.

"She's not a stricken deer anyway," said Ned, trying to be witty, and succeeding as well as very young gentlemen usually do.

On the lawn where it had gathered, the little party separated with cordial good nights and good-bys, for the Vaughns were going to Canada. As the
four  sisters  went  home  through the garden, Miss Kate looked after them, saying, without the patronizing tone in her voice, "In spite of their
demonstrative manners, American girls are very nice when one knows them."


"I quite agree with you," said Mr. Brooke.



CHAPTER THIRTEEN

CASTLES IN THE AIR

Laurie  lay luxuriously swinging to and fro in his hammock one warm September afternoon, wondering what his neighbors were about, but too lazy to
go  and find out. He was in one of his moods, for the day had been both unprofitable and unsatisfactory, and he was wishing he could live it over
again.  The  hot weather made him indolent, and he had shirked his studies, tried Mr. Brooke's patience to the utmost, displeased his grandfather
by practicing half the afternoon, frightened the maidservants half out of their wits by mischievously hinting that one of his dogs was going mad,
and,  after  high  words  with  the  stableman  about  some  fancied neglect of his horse, he had flung himself into his hammock to fume over the
stupidity  of  the  world  in  general,  till the peace of the lovely day quieted him in spite of himself. Staring up into the green gloom of the
horse-chestnut  trees above him, he dreamed dreams of all sorts, and was just imagining himself tossing on the ocean in a voyage round the world,
when  the sound of voices brought him ashore in a flash. Peeping through the meshes of the hammock, he saw the Marches coming out, as if bound on
some expedition.

"What  in  the  world  are  those  girls  about now?" thought Laurie, opening his sleepy eyes to take a good look, for there was something rather
peculiar  in  the  appearance  of his neighbors. Each wore a large, flapping hat, a brown linen pouch slung over one shoulder, and carried a long
staff.  Meg had a cushion, Jo a book, Beth a basket, and Amy a portfolio. All walked quietly through the garden, out at the little back gate, and
began to climb the hill that lay between the house and river.

"Well,  that's  cool," said Laurie to himself, "to have a picnic and never ask me! They can't be going in the boat, for they haven't got the key.
Perhaps they forgot it. I'll take it to them, and see what's going on."

Though  possessed of half a dozen hats, it took him some time to find one, then there was a hunt for the key, which was at last discovered in his
pocket,  so  that  the  girls  were  quite out of sight when he leaped the fence and ran after them. Taking the shortest way to the boathouse, he
waited for them to appear, but no one came, and he went up the hill to take an observation. A grove of pines covered one part of it, and from the
heart of this green spot came a clearer sound than the soft sigh of the pines or the drowsy chirp of the crickets.

"Here's a landscape!" thought Laurie, peeping through the bushes, and looking wide-awake and good-natured already.

It  was  a  rather  pretty little picture, for the sisters sat together in the shady nook, with sun and shadow flickering over them, the aromatic
wind  lifting  their  hair and cooling their hot cheeks, and all the little wood people going on with their affairs as if these were no strangers
but old friends. Meg sat upon her cushion, sewing daintily with her white hands, and looking as fresh and sweet as a rose in her pink dress among
the  green.  Beth was sorting the cones that lay thick under the hemlock near by, for she made pretty things with them. Amy was sketching a group
of ferns, and Jo was knitting as she read aloud. A shadow passed over the boy's face as he watched them, feeling that he ought to go away because
uninvited;  yet  lingering  because home seemed very lonely and this quiet party in the woods most attractive to his restless spirit. He stood so
still  that  a  squirrel, busy with its harvesting, ran down a pine close beside him, saw him suddenly and skipped back, scolding so shrilly that
Beth looked up, espied the wistful face behind the birches, and beckoned with a reassuring smile.

"May I come in, please? Or shall I be a bother?" he asked, advancing slowly.

Meg  lifted  her eyebrows, but Jo scowled at her defiantly and said at once, "Of course you may. We should have asked you before, only we thought
you wouldn't care for such a girl's game as this."

"I always like your games, but if Meg doesn't want me, I'll go away."

"I've no objection, if you do something. It's against the rules to be idle here," replied Meg gravely but graciously.

"Much  obliged. I'll do anything if you'll let me stop a bit, for it's as dull as the Desert of Sahara down there. Shall I sew, read, cone, draw,
or do all at once? Bring on your bears. I'm ready." And Laurie sat down with a submissive expression delightful to behold.

"Finish this story while I set my heel," said Jo, handing him the book.

"Yes'm." was the meek answer, as he began, doing his best to prove his gratitude for the favor of admission into the 'Busy Bee Society'.

The story was not a long one, and when it was finished, he ventured to ask a few questions as a reward of merit.

"Please, ma'am, could I inquire if this highly instructive and charming institution is a new one?"

"Would you tell him?" asked Meg of her sisters.

"He'll laugh," said Amy warningly.

"Who cares?" said Jo.

"I guess he'll like it," added Beth.

"Of course I shall! I give you my word I won't laugh. Tell away, Jo, and don't be afraid."

"The  idea of being afraid of you! Well, you see we used to play Pilgrim's Progress, and we have been going on with it in earnest, all winter and
summer."

"Yes, I know," said Laurie, nodding wisely.

"Who told you?" demanded Jo.

"Spirits."

"No,  I  did.  I  wanted  to amuse him one night when you were all away, and he was rather dismal. He did like it, so don't scold, Jo," said Beth
meekly.

"You can't keep a secret. Never mind, it saves trouble now."

"Go on, please," said Laurie, as Jo became absorbed in her work, looking a trifle displeased.

"Oh, didn't she tell you about this new plan of ours? Well, we have tried not to waste our holiday, but each has had a task and worked at it with
a will. The vacation is nearly over, the stints are all done, and we are ever so glad that we didn't dawdle."

"Yes, I should think so," and Laurie thought regretfully of his own idle days.

"Mother  likes  to have us out-of-doors as much as possible, so we bring our work here and have nice times. For the fun of it we bring our things
in  these  bags,  wear the old hats, use poles to climb the hill, and play pilgrims, as we used to do years ago. We call this hill the Delectable
Mountain, for we can look far away and see the country where we hope to live some time."

Jo  pointed, and Laurie sat up to examine, for through an opening in the wood one could look cross the wide, blue river, the meadows on the other
side,  far  over  the outskirts of the great city, to the green hills that rose to meet the sky. The sun was low, and the heavens glowed with the
splendor  of  an  autumn  sunset.  Gold and purple clouds lay on the hilltops, and rising high into the ruddy light were silvery white peaks that
shone like the airy spires of some Celestial City.

"How beautiful that is!" said Laurie softly, for he was quick to see and feel beauty of any kind.

"It's often so, and we like to watch it, for it is never the same, but always splendid," replied Amy, wishing she could paint it.

"Jo  talks about the country where we hope to live sometime--the real country, she means, with pigs and chickens and haymaking. It would be nice,
but I wish the beautiful country up there was real, and we could ever go to it," said Beth musingly.

"There is a lovelier country even than that, where we shall go, by-and-by, when we are good enough," answered Meg with her sweetest voice.

"It seems so long to wait, so hard to do. I want to fly away at once, as those swallows fly, and go in at that splendid gate."

"You'll get there, Beth, sooner or later, no fear of that," said Jo. "I'm the one that will have to fight and work, and climb and wait, and maybe
never get in after all."

"You'll  have  me  for company, if that's any comfort. I shall have to do a deal of traveling before I come in sight of your Celestial City. If I
arrive late, you'll say a good word for me, won't you, Beth?"

Something  in  the  boy's face troubled his little friend, but she said cheerfully, with her quiet eyes on the changing clouds, "If people really
want  to  go, and really try all their lives, I think they will get in, for I don't believe there are any locks on that door or any guards at the
gate.  I  always  imagine  it is as it is in the picture, where the shining ones stretch out their hands to welcome poor Christian as he comes up
from the river."

"Wouldn't it be fun if all the castles in the air which we make could come true, and we could live in them?" said Jo, after a little pause.

"I've  made  such  quantities  it  would  be  hard  to choose which I'd have," said Laurie, lying flat and throwing cones at the squirrel who had
betrayed him.

"You'd have to take your favorite one. What is it?" asked Meg.

"If I tell mine, will you tell yours?"

"Yes, if the girls will too."

"We will. Now, Laurie."

"After  I'd  seen  as  much  of the world as I want to, I'd like to settle in Germany and have just as much music as I choose. I'm to be a famous
musician myself, and all creation is to rush to hear me. And I'm never to be bothered about money or business, but just enjoy myself and live for
what I like. That's my favorite castle. What's yours, Meg?"

Margaret  seemed  to  find  it  a  little hard to tell hers, and waved a brake before her face, as if to disperse imaginary gnats, while she said
slowly, "I should like a lovely house, full of all sorts of luxurious things--nice food, pretty clothes, handsome furniture, pleasant people, and
heaps  of  money. I am to be mistress of it, and manage it as I like, with plenty of servants, so I never need work a bit. How I should enjoy it!
For I wouldn't be idle, but do good, and make everyone love me dearly."

"Wouldn't you have a master for your castle in the air?" asked Laurie slyly.

"I said 'pleasant people', you know," and Meg carefully tied up her shoe as she spoke, so that no one saw her face.

"Why don't you say you'd have a splendid, wise, good husband and some angelic little children? You know your castle wouldn't be perfect without,"
said blunt Jo, who had no tender fancies yet, and rather scorned romance, except in books.

"You'd have nothing but horses, inkstands, and novels in yours," answered Meg petulantly.

"Wouldn't  I  though?  I'd  have  a stable full of Arabian steeds, rooms piled high with books, and I'd write out of a magic inkstand, so that my
works should be as famous as Laurie's music. I want to do something splendid before I go into my castle, something heroic or wonderful that won't
be  forgotten after I'm dead. I don't know what, but I'm on the watch for it, and mean to astonish you all some day. I think I shall write books,
and get rich and famous, that would suit me, so that is my favorite dream."

"Mine is to stay at home safe with Father and Mother, and help take care of the family," said Beth contentedly.

"Don't you wish for anything else?" asked Laurie.

"Since I had my little piano, I am perfectly satisfied. I only wish we may all keep well and be together, nothing else."

"I  have  ever  so  many  wishes,  but  the pet one is to be an artist, and go to Rome, and do fine pictures, and be the best artist in the whole
world," was Amy's modest desire.

"We're  an ambitious set, aren't we? Every one of us, but Beth, wants to be rich and famous, and gorgeous in every respect. I do wonder if any of
us will ever get our wishes," said Laurie, chewing grass like a meditative calf.

"I've got the key to my castle in the air, but whether I can unlock the door remains to be seen," observed Jo mysteriously.

"I've got the key to mine, but I'm not allowed to try it. Hang college!" muttered Laurie with an impatient sigh.

"Here's mine!" and Amy waved her pencil.

"I haven't got any," said Meg forlornly.

"Yes, you have," said Laurie at once.

"Where?"

"In your face."

"Nonsense, that's of no use."

"Wait  and  see  if  it  doesn't bring you something worth having," replied the boy, laughing at the thought of a charming little secret which he
fancied he knew.

Meg  colored  behind  the  brake, but asked no questions and looked across the river with the same expectant expression which Mr. Brooke had worn
when he told the story of the knight.

"If  we are all alive ten years hence, let's meet, and see how many of us have got our wishes, or how much nearer we are then than now," said Jo,
always ready with a plan.

"Bless me! How old I shall be, twenty-seven!" exclaimed Meg, who felt grown up already, having just reached seventeen.

"You and I will be twenty-six, Teddy, Beth twenty-four, and Amy twenty-two. What a venerable party!" said Jo.

"I hope I shall have done something to be proud of by that time, but I'm such a lazy dog, I'm afraid I shall dawdle, Jo."

"You need a motive, Mother says, and when you get it, she is sure you'll work splendidly."

"Is  she?  By  Jupiter,  I  will,  if  I  only  get  the chance!" cried Laurie, sitting up with sudden energy. "I ought to be satisfied to please
Grandfather,  and  I do try, but it's working against the grain, you see, and comes hard. He wants me to be an India merchant, as he was, and I'd
rather  be  shot.  I hate tea and silk and spices, and every sort of rubbish his old ships bring, and I don't care how soon they go to the bottom
when  I own them. Going to college ought to satisfy him, for if I give him four years he ought to let me off from the business. But he's set, and
I've  got to do just as he did, unless I break away and please myself, as my father did. If there was anyone left to stay with the old gentleman,
I'd do it tomorrow."

Laurie spoke excitedly, and looked ready to carry his threat into execution on the slightest provocation, for he was growing up very fast and, in
spite of his indolent ways, had a young man's hatred of subjection, a young man's restless longing to try the world for himself.

"I  advise  you  to  sail  away in one of your ships, and never come home again till you have tried your own way," said Jo, whose imagination was
fired by the thought of such a daring exploit, and whose sympathy was excited by what she called 'Teddy's Wrongs'.

"That's not right, Jo. You mustn't talk in that way, and Laurie mustn't take your bad advice. You should do just what your grandfather wishes, my
dear  boy,"  said Meg in her most maternal tone. "Do your best at college, and when he sees that you try to please him, I'm sure he won't be hard
on you or unjust to you. As you say, there is no one else to stay with and love him, and you'd never forgive yourself if you left him without his
permission. Don't be dismal or fret, but do your duty and you'll get your reward, as good Mr. Brooke has, by being respected and loved."

"What  do  you  know about him?" asked Laurie, grateful for the good advice, but objecting to the lecture, and glad to turn the conversation from
himself after his unusual outbreak.

"Only  what  your  grandpa told us about him, how he took good care of his own mother till she died, and wouldn't go abroad as tutor to some nice
person  because  he  wouldn't  leave  her. And how he provides now for an old woman who nursed his mother, and never tells anyone, but is just as
generous and patient and good as he can be."

"So  he is, dear old fellow!" said Laurie heartily, as Meg paused, looking flushed and earnest with her story. "It's like Grandpa to find out all
about  him  without  letting  him  know, and to tell all his goodness to others, so that they might like him. Brooke couldn't understand why your
mother  was  so  kind to him, asking him over with me and treating him in her beautiful friendly way. He thought she was just perfect, and talked
about it for days and days, and went on about you all in flaming style. If ever I do get my wish, you see what I'll do for Brooke."

"Begin to do something now by not plaguing his life out," said Meg sharply.

"How do you know I do, Miss?"

"I  can  always  tell  by  his face when he goes away. If you have been good, he looks satisfied and walks briskly. If you have plagued him, he's
sober and walks slowly, as if he wanted to go back and do his work better."

"Well,  I  like that? So you keep an account of my good and bad marks in Brooke's face, do you? I see him bow and smile as he passes your window,
but I didn't know you'd got up a telegraph."

"We  haven't.  Don't  be angry, and oh, don't tell him I said anything! It was only to show that I cared how you get on, and what is said here is
said in confidence, you know," cried Meg, much alarmed at the thought of what might follow from her careless speech.

"I  don't  tell  tales,"  replied  Laurie, with his 'high and mighty' air, as Jo called a certain expression which he occasionally wore. "Only if
Brooke is going to be a thermometer, I must mind and have fair weather for him to report."

"Please  don't  be offended. I didn't mean to preach or tell tales or be silly. I only thought Jo was encouraging you in a feeling which you'd be
sorry  for  by-and-by.  You are so kind to us, we feel as if you were our brother and say just what we think. Forgive me, I meant it kindly." And
Meg offered her hand with a gesture both affectionate and timid.

Ashamed  of his momentary pique, Laurie squeezed the kind little hand, and said frankly, "I'm the one to be forgiven. I'm cross and have been out
of sorts all day. I like to have you tell me my faults and be sisterly, so don't mind if I am grumpy sometimes. I thank you all the same."

Bent on showing that he was not offended, he made himself as agreeable as possible, wound cotton for Meg, recited poetry to please Jo, shook down
cones  for  Beth,  and  helped  Amy with her ferns, proving himself a fit person to belong to the 'Busy Bee Society'. In the midst of an animated
discussion on the domestic habits of turtles (one of those amiable creatures having strolled up from the river), the faint sound of a bell warned
them that Hannah had put the tea 'to draw', and they would just have time to get home to supper.

"May I come again?" asked Laurie.

"Yes, if you are good, and love your book, as the boys in the primer are told to do," said Meg, smiling.

"I'll try."

"Then  you  may come, and I'll teach you to knit as the Scotchmen do. There's a demand for socks just now," added Jo, waving hers like a big blue
worsted banner as they parted at the gate.

That  night, when Beth played to Mr. Laurence in the twilight, Laurie, standing in the shadow of the curtain, listened to the little David, whose
simple  music  always  quieted his moody spirit, and watched the old man, who sat with his gray head on his hand, thinking tender thoughts of the
dead  child  he had loved so much. Remembering the conversation of the afternoon, the boy said to himself, with the resolve to make the sacrifice
cheerfully, "I'll let my castle go, and stay with the dear old gentleman while he needs me, for I am all he has."



CHAPTER FOURTEEN

SECRETS

Jo  was  very  busy  in  the garret, for the October days began to grow chilly, and the afternoons were short. For two or three hours the sun lay
warmly in the high window, showing Jo seated on the old sofa, writing busily, with her papers spread out upon a trunk before her, while Scrabble,
the  pet  rat,  promenaded  the beams overhead, accompanied by his oldest son, a fine young fellow, who was evidently very proud of his whiskers.
Quite  absorbed  in  her  work, Jo scribbled away till the last page was filled, when she signed her name with a flourish and threw down her pen,
exclaiming . . .

"There, I've done my best! If this won't suit I shall have to wait till I can do better."

Lying  back  on  the sofa, she read the manuscript carefully through, making dashes here and there, and putting in many exclamation points, which
looked  like little balloons. Then she tied it up with a smart red ribbon, and sat a minute looking at it with a sober, wistful expression, which
plainly  showed  how  earnest her work had been. Jo's desk up here was an old tin kitchen which hung against the wall. In it she kept her papers,
and  a  few books, safely shut away from Scrabble, who, being likewise of a literary turn, was fond of making a circulating library of such books
as  were  left  in  his  way by eating the leaves. From this tin receptacle Jo produced another manuscript, and putting both in her pocket, crept
quietly downstairs, leaving her friends to nibble on her pens and taste her ink.

She put on her hat and jacket as noiselessly as possible, and going to the back entry window, got out upon the roof of a low porch, swung herself
down  to  the  grassy bank, and took a roundabout way to the road. Once there, she composed herself, hailed a passing omnibus, and rolled away to
town, looking very merry and mysterious.

If  anyone had been watching her, he would have thought her movements decidedly peculiar, for on alighting, she went off at a great pace till she
reached  a  certain  number in a certain busy street. Having found the place with some difficulty, she went into the doorway, looked up the dirty
stairs,  and  after  standing  stock  still  a  minute,  suddenly dived into the street and walked away as rapidly as she came. This maneuver she
repeated  several  times,  to the great amusement of a black-eyed young gentleman lounging in the window of a building opposite. On returning for
the  third  time,  Jo  gave herself a shake, pulled her hat over her eyes, and walked up the stairs, looking as if she were going to have all her
teeth out.

There  was  a  dentist's  sign,  among others, which adorned the entrance, and after staring a moment at the pair of artificial jaws which slowly
opened and shut to draw attention to a fine set of teeth, the young gentleman put on his coat, took his hat, and went down to post himself in the
opposite  doorway,  saying  with  a  smile  and a shiver, "It's like her to come alone, but if she has a bad time she'll need someone to help her
home."

In ten minutes Jo came running downstairs with a very red face and the general appearance of a person who had just passed through a trying ordeal
of some sort. When she saw the young gentleman she looked anything but pleased, and passed him with a nod. But he followed, asking with an air of
sympathy, "Did you have a bad time?"

"Not very."

"You got through quickly."

"Yes, thank goodness!"

"Why did you go alone?"

"Didn't want anyone to know."

"You're the oddest fellow I ever saw. How many did you have out?"

Jo looked at her friend as if she did not understand him, then began to laugh as if mightily amused at something.

"There are two which I want to have come out, but I must wait a week."

"What are you laughing at? You are up to some mischief, Jo," said Laurie, looking mystified.

"So are you. What were you doing, sir, up in that billiard saloon?"

"Begging your pardon, ma'am, it wasn't a billiard saloon, but a gymnasium, and I was taking a lesson in fencing."

"I'm glad of that."

"Why?"

"You can teach me, and then when we play _Hamlet_, you can be Laertes, and we'll make a fine thing of the fencing scene."

Laurie burst out with a hearty boy's laugh, which made several passers-by smile in spite of themselves.

"I'll  teach  you  whether  we  play _Hamlet_ or not. It's grand fun and will straighten you up capitally. But I don't believe that was your only
reason for saying 'I'm glad' in that decided way, was it now?"

"No, I was glad that you were not in the saloon, because I hope you never go to such places. Do you?"

"Not often."

"I wish you wouldn't."

"It's  no  harm,  Jo.  I have billiards at home, but it's no fun unless you have good players, so, as I'm fond of it, I come sometimes and have a
game with Ned Moffat or some of the other fellows."

"Oh,  dear,  I'm so sorry, for you'll get to liking it better and better, and will waste time and money, and grow like those dreadful boys. I did
hope you'd stay respectable and be a satisfaction to your friends," said Jo, shaking her head.

"Can't a fellow take a little innocent amusement now and then without losing his respectability?" asked Laurie, looking nettled.

"That  depends  upon  how and where he takes it. I don't like Ned and his set, and wish you'd keep out of it. Mother won't let us have him at our
house, though he wants to come. And if you grow like him she won't be willing to have us frolic together as we do now."

"Won't she?" asked Laurie anxiously.

"No, she can't bear fashionable young men, and she'd shut us all up in bandboxes rather than have us associate with them."

"Well,  she needn't get out her bandboxes yet. I'm not a fashionable party and don't mean to be, but I do like harmless larks now and then, don't
you?"

"Yes, nobody minds them, so lark away, but don't get wild, will you? Or there will be an end of all our good times."

"I'll be a double distilled saint."

"I  can't bear saints. Just be a simple, honest, respectable boy, and we'll never desert you. I don't know what I should do if you acted like Mr.
King's  son.  He  had  plenty of money, but didn't know how to spend it, and got tipsy and gambled, and ran away, and forged his father's name, I
believe, and was altogether horrid."

"You think I'm likely to do the same? Much obliged."

"No, I don't--oh, dear, no!--but I hear people talking about money being such a temptation, and I sometimes wish you were poor. I shouldn't worry
then."

"Do you worry about me, Jo?"

"A  little,  when  you  look  moody  and discontented, as you sometimes do, for you've got such a strong will, if you once get started wrong, I'm
afraid it would be hard to stop you."

Laurie walked in silence a few minutes, and Jo watched him, wishing she had held her tongue, for his eyes looked angry, though his lips smiled as
if at her warnings.

"Are you going to deliver lectures all the way home?" he asked presently.

"Of course not. Why?"

"Because if you are, I'll take a bus. If you're not, I'd like to walk with you and tell you something very interesting."

"I won't preach any more, and I'd like to hear the news immensely."

"Very well, then, come on. It's a secret, and if I tell you, you must tell me yours."

"I haven't got any," began Jo, but stopped suddenly, remembering that she had.

"You know you have--you can't hide anything, so up and 'fess, or I won't tell," cried Laurie.

"Is your secret a nice one?"

"Oh, isn't it! All about people you know, and such fun! You ought to hear it, and I've been aching to tell it this long time. Come, you begin."

"You'll not say anything about it at home, will you?"

"Not a word."

"And you won't tease me in private?"

"I never tease."

"Yes, you do. You get everything you want out of people. I don't know how you do it, but you are a born wheedler."

"Thank you. Fire away."

"Well, I've left two stories with a newspaperman, and he's to give his answer next week," whispered Jo, in her confidant's ear.

"Hurrah  for Miss March, the celebrated American authoress!" cried Laurie, throwing up his hat and catching it again, to the great delight of two
ducks, four cats, five hens, and half a dozen Irish children, for they were out of the city now.

"Hush! It won't come to anything, I dare say, but I couldn't rest till I had tried, and I said nothing about it because I didn't want anyone else
to be disappointed."

"It  won't  fail. Why, Jo, your stories are works of Shakespeare compared to half the rubbish that is published every day. Won't it be fun to see
them in print, and shan't we feel proud of our authoress?"

Jo's eyes sparkled, for it is always pleasant to be believed in, and a friend's praise is always sweeter than a dozen newspaper puffs.

"Where's  your secret? Play fair, Teddy, or I'll never believe you again," she said, trying to extinguish the brilliant hopes that blazed up at a
word of encouragement.

"I  may get into a scrape for telling, but I didn't promise not to, so I will, for I never feel easy in my mind till I've told you any plummy bit
of news I get. I know where Meg's glove is."

"Is that all?" said Jo, looking disappointed, as Laurie nodded and twinkled with a face full of mysterious intelligence.

"It's quite enough for the present, as you'll agree when I tell you where it is."

"Tell, then."

Laurie  bent,  and  whispered  three  words  in Jo's ear, which produced a comical change. She stood and stared at him for a minute, looking both
surprised and displeased, then walked on, saying sharply, "How do you know?"

"Saw it."

"Where?"

"Pocket."

"All this time?"

"Yes, isn't that romantic?"

"No, it's horrid."

"Don't you like it?"

"Of course I don't. It's ridiculous, it won't be allowed. My patience! What would Meg say?"

"You are not to tell anyone. Mind that."

"I didn't promise."

"That was understood, and I trusted you."

"Well, I won't for the present, anyway, but I'm disgusted, and wish you hadn't told me."

"I thought you'd be pleased."

"At the idea of anybody coming to take Meg away? No, thank you."

"You'll feel better about it when somebody comes to take you away."

"I'd like to see anyone try it," cried Jo fiercely.

"So should I!" and Laurie chuckled at the idea.

"I don't think secrets agree with me, I feel rumpled up in my mind since you told me that," said Jo rather ungratefully.

"Race down this hill with me, and you'll be all right," suggested Laurie.

No  one was in sight, the smooth road sloped invitingly before her, and finding the temptation irresistible, Jo darted away, soon leaving hat and
comb  behind her and scattering hairpins as she ran. Laurie reached the goal first and was quite satisfied with the success of his treatment, for
his Atlanta came panting up with flying hair, bright eyes, ruddy cheeks, and no signs of dissatisfaction in her face.

"I  wish I was a horse, then I could run for miles in this splendid air, and not lose my breath. It was capital, but see what a guy it's made me.
Go, pick up my things, like a cherub, as you are," said Jo, dropping down under a maple tree, which was carpeting the bank with crimson leaves.

Laurie  leisurely  departed  to recover the lost property, and Jo bundled up her braids, hoping no one would pass by till she was tidy again. But
someone did pass, and who should it be but Meg, looking particularly ladylike in her state and festival suit, for she had been making calls.

"What in the world are you doing here?" she asked, regarding her disheveled sister with well-bred surprise.

"Getting leaves," meekly answered Jo, sorting the rosy handful she had just swept up.

"And hairpins," added Laurie, throwing half a dozen into Jo's lap. "They grow on this road, Meg, so do combs and brown straw hats."

"You have been running, Jo. How could you? When will you stop such romping ways?" said Meg reprovingly, as she settled her cuffs and smoothed her
hair, with which the wind had taken liberties.

"Never till I'm stiff and old and have to use a crutch. Don't try to make me grow up before my time, Meg. It's hard enough to have you change all
of a sudden. Let me be a little girl as long as I can."

As  she  spoke,  Jo bent over the leaves to hide the trembling of her lips, for lately she had felt that Margaret was fast getting to be a woman,
and  Laurie's  secret made her dread the separation which must surely come some time and now seemed very near. He saw the trouble in her face and
drew Meg's attention from it by asking quickly, "Where have you been calling, all so fine?"

"At the Gardiners', and Sallie has been telling me all about Belle Moffat's wedding. It was very splendid, and they have gone to spend the winter
in Paris. Just think how delightful that must be!"

"Do you envy her, Meg?" said Laurie.

"I'm afraid I do."

"I'm glad of it!" muttered Jo, tying on her hat with a jerk.

"Why?" asked Meg, looking surprised.

"Because  if you care much about riches, you will never go and marry a poor man," said Jo, frowning at Laurie, who was mutely warning her to mind
what she said.

"I  shall  never  'go  and  marry' anyone," observed Meg, walking on with great dignity while the others followed, laughing, whispering, skipping
stones,  and  'behaving like children', as Meg said to herself, though she might have been tempted to join them if she had not had her best dress
on.

For  a  week  or two, Jo behaved so queerly that her sisters were quite bewildered. She rushed to the door when the postman rang, was rude to Mr.
Brooke  whenever  they  met,  would  sit  looking  at  Meg  with  a woe-begone face, occasionally jumping up to shake and then kiss her in a very
mysterious  manner.  Laurie  and  she were always making signs to one another, and talking about 'Spread Eagles' till the girls declared they had
both  lost  their wits. On the second Saturday after Jo got out of the window, Meg, as she sat sewing at her window, was scandalized by the sight
of Laurie chasing Jo all over the garden and finally capturing her in Amy's bower. What went on there, Meg could not see, but shrieks of laughter
were heard, followed by the murmur of voices and a great flapping of newspapers.

"What shall we do with that girl? She never will behave like a young lady," sighed Meg, as she watched the race with a disapproving face.

"I  hope she won't. She is so funny and dear as she is," said Beth, who had never betrayed that she was a little hurt at Jo's having secrets with
anyone but her.

"It's  very  trying,  but  we never can make her comme la fo," added Amy, who sat making some new frills for herself, with her curls tied up in a
very becoming way, two agreeable things that made her feel unusually elegant and ladylike.

In a few minutes Jo bounced in, laid herself on the sofa, and affected to read.

"Have you anything interesting there?" asked Meg, with condescension.

"Nothing but a story, won't amount to much, I guess," returned Jo, carefully keeping the name of the paper out of sight.

"You'd better read it aloud. That will amuse us and keep you out of mischief," said Amy in her most grown-up tone.

"What's the name?" asked Beth, wondering why Jo kept her face behind the sheet.

"The Rival Painters."

"That sounds well. Read it," said Meg.

With  a  loud  "Hem!"  and  a  long breath, Jo began to read very fast. The girls listened with interest, for the tale was romantic, and somewhat
pathetic, as most of the characters died in the end. "I like that about the splendid picture," was Amy's approving remark, as Jo paused.

"I  prefer the lovering part. Viola and Angelo are two of our favorite names, isn't that queer?" said Meg, wiping her eyes, for the lovering part
was tragical.

"Who wrote it?" asked Beth, who had caught a glimpse of Jo's face.

The  reader  suddenly sat up, cast away the paper, displaying a flushed countenance, and with a funny mixture of solemnity and excitement replied
in a loud voice, "Your sister."

"You?" cried Meg, dropping her work.

"It's very good," said Amy critically.

"I knew it! I knew it! Oh, my Jo, I am so proud!" and Beth ran to hug her sister and exult over this splendid success.

Dear me, how delighted they all were, to be sure! How Meg wouldn't believe it till she saw the words. "Miss Josephine March," actually printed in
the paper. How graciously Amy critisized the artistic parts of the story, and offered hints for a sequel, which unfortunately couldn't be carried
out,  as the hero and heroine were dead. How Beth got excited, and skipped and sang with joy. How Hannah came in to exclaim, "Sakes alive, well I
never!"  in  great  astonishment at 'that Jo's doin's'. How proud Mrs. March was when she knew it. How Jo laughed, with tears in her eyes, as she
declared  she might as well be a peacock and done with it, and how the 'Spread Eagle' might be said to flap his wings triumphantly over the House
of March, as the paper passed from hand to hand.

"Tell us about it." "When did it come?" "How much did you get for it?" "What will Father say?" "Won't Laurie laugh?" cried the family, all in one
breath as they clustered about Jo, for these foolish, affectionate people made a jubilee of every little household joy.

"Stop  jabbering, girls, and I'll tell you everything," said Jo, wondering if Miss Burney felt any grander over her Evelina than she did over her
'Rival  Painters'.  Having  told how she disposed of her tales, Jo added, "And when I went to get my answer, the man said he liked them both, but
didn't  pay beginners, only let them print in his paper, and noticed the stories. It was good practice, he said, and when the beginners improved,
anyone  would pay. So I let him have the two stories, and today this was sent to me, and Laurie caught me with it and insisted on seeing it, so I
let  him.  And he said it was good, and I shall write more, and he's going to get the next paid for, and I am so happy, for in time I may be able
to support myself and help the girls."

Jo's  breath  gave out here, and wrapping her head in the paper, she bedewed her little story with a few natural tears, for to be independent and
earn the praise of those she loved were the dearest wishes of her heart, and this seemed to be the first step toward that happy end.



CHAPTER FIFTEEN

A TELEGRAM

"November  is  the  most  disagreeable  month  in  the  whole year," said Margaret, standing at the window one dull afternoon, looking out at the
frostbitten garden.

"That's the reason I was born in it," observed Jo pensively, quite unconscious of the blot on her nose.

"If  something  very  pleasant  should happen now, we should think it a delightful month," said Beth, who took a hopeful view of everything, even
November.

"I  dare say, but nothing pleasant ever does happen in this family," said Meg, who was out of sorts. "We go grubbing along day after day, without
a bit of change, and very little fun. We might as well be in a treadmill."

"My patience, how blue we are!" cried Jo. "I don't much wonder, poor dear, for you see other girls having splendid times, while you grind, grind,
year  in  and  year out. Oh, don't I wish I could manage things for you as I do for my heroines! You're pretty enough and good enough already, so
I'd  have some rich relation leave you a fortune unexpectedly. Then you'd dash out as an heiress, scorn everyone who has slighted you, go abroad,
and come home my Lady Something in a blaze of splendor and elegance."

"People  don't  have fortunes left them in that style nowadays, men have to work and women marry for money. It's a dreadfully unjust world," said
Meg bitterly.

"Jo  and  I  are going to make fortunes for you all. Just wait ten years, and see if we don't," said Amy, who sat in a corner making mud pies, as
Hannah called her little clay models of birds, fruit, and faces.

"Can't wait, and I'm afraid I haven't much faith in ink and dirt, though I'm grateful for your good intentions."

Meg  sighed, and turned to the frostbitten garden again. Jo groaned and leaned both elbows on the table in a despondent attitude, but Amy spatted
away  energetically,  and Beth, who sat at the other window, said, smiling, "Two pleasant things are going to happen right away. Marmee is coming
down the street, and Laurie is tramping through the garden as if he had something nice to tell."

In  they  both came, Mrs. March with her usual question, "Any letter from Father, girls?" and Laurie to say in his persuasive way, "Won't some of
you come for a drive? I've been working away at mathematics till my head is in a muddle, and I'm going to freshen my wits by a brisk turn. It's a
dull  day,  but  the air isn't bad, and I'm going to take Brooke home, so it will be gay inside, if it isn't out. Come, Jo, you and Beth will go,
won't you?"

"Of course we will."

"Much  obliged,  but I'm busy." And Meg whisked out her workbasket, for she had agreed with her mother that it was best, for her at least, not to
drive too often with the young gentleman.

"We three will be ready in a minute," cried Amy, running away to wash her hands.

"Can I do anything for you, Madam Mother?" asked Laurie, leaning over Mrs. March's chair with the affectionate look and tone he always gave her.

"No,  thank  you,  except  call  at  the office, if you'll be so kind, dear. It's our day for a letter, and the postman hasn't been. Father is as
regular as the sun, but there's some delay on the way, perhaps."

A sharp ring interrupted her, and a minute after Hannah came in with a letter.

"It's one of them horrid telegraph things, mum," she said, handling it as if she was afraid it would explode and do some damage.

At the word 'telegraph', Mrs. March snatched it, read the two lines it contained, and dropped back into her chair as white as if the little paper
had  sent a bullet to her heart. Laurie dashed downstairs for water, while Meg and Hannah supported her, and Jo read aloud, in a frightened voice
. . .

Mrs. March: Your husband is very ill. Come at once. S. HALE Blank Hospital, Washington.

How  still the room was as they listened breathlessly, how strangely the day darkened outside, and how suddenly the whole world seemed to change,
as the girls gathered about their mother, feeling as if all the happiness and support of their lives was about to be taken from them.

Mrs.  March  was herself again directly, read the message over, and stretched out her arms to her daughters, saying, in a tone they never forgot,
"I shall go at once, but it may be too late. Oh, children, children, help me to bear it!"

For  several minutes there was nothing but the sound of sobbing in the room, mingled with broken words of comfort, tender assurances of help, and
hopeful  whispers that died away in tears. Poor Hannah was the first to recover, and with unconscious wisdom she set all the rest a good example,
for with her, work was panacea for most afflictions.

"The Lord keep the dear man! I won't waste no time a-cryin', but git your things ready right away, mum," she said heartily, as she wiped her face
on her apron, gave her mistress a warm shake of the hand with her own hard one, and went away to work like three women in one.

"She's right, there's no time for tears now. Be calm, girls, and let me think."

They tried to be calm, poor things, as their mother sat up, looking pale but steady, and put away her grief to think and plan for them.

"Where's Laurie?" she asked presently, when she had collected her thoughts and decided on the first duties to be done.

"Here,  ma'am. Oh, let me do something!" cried the boy, hurrying from the next room whither he had withdrawn, feeling that their first sorrow was
too sacred for even his friendly eyes to see.

"Send a telegram saying I will come at once. The next train goes early in the morning. I'll take that."

"What else? The horses are ready. I can go anywhere, do anything," he said, looking ready to fly to the ends of the earth.

"Leave a note at Aunt March's. Jo, give me that pen and paper."

Tearing  off  the  blank  side  of  one of her newly copied pages, Jo drew the table before her mother, well knowing that money for the long, sad
journey must be borrowed, and feeling as if she could do anything to add a little to the sum for her father.

"Now go, dear, but don't kill yourself driving at a desperate pace. There is no need of that."

Mrs.  March's  warning  was  evidently thrown away, for five minutes later Laurie tore by the window on his own fleet horse, riding as if for his
life.

"Jo,  run  to  the  rooms, and tell Mrs. King that I can't come. On the way get these things. I'll put them down, they'll be needed and I must go
prepared  for  nursing. Hospital stores are not always good. Beth, go and ask Mr. Laurence for a couple of bottles of old wine. I'm not too proud
to  beg for Father. He shall have the best of everything. Amy, tell Hannah to get down the black trunk, and Meg, come and help me find my things,
for I'm half bewildered."

Writing, thinking, and directing all at once might well bewilder the poor lady, and Meg begged her to sit quietly in her room for a little while,
and let them work. Everyone scattered like leaves before a gust of wind, and the quiet, happy household was broken up as suddenly as if the paper
had been an evil spell.

Mr. Laurence came hurrying back with Beth, bringing every comfort the kind old gentleman could think of for the invalid, and friendliest promises
of  protection for the girls during the mother's absence, which comforted her very much. There was nothing he didn't offer, from his own dressing
gown  to  himself  as  escort. But the last was impossible. Mrs. March would not hear of the old gentleman's undertaking the long journey, yet an
expression  of  relief  was visible when he spoke of it, for anxiety ill fits one for traveling. He saw the look, knit his heavy eyebrows, rubbed
his  hands,  and  marched  abruptly away, saying he'd be back directly. No one had time to think of him again till, as Meg ran through the entry,
with a pair of rubbers in one hand and a cup of tea in the other, she came suddenly upon Mr. Brooke.

"I'm  very sorry to hear of this, Miss March," he said, in the kind, quiet tone which sounded very pleasantly to her perturbed spirit. "I came to
offer  myself as escort to your mother. Mr. Laurence has commissions for me in Washington, and it will give me real satisfaction to be of service
to her there."

Down  dropped  the  rubbers, and the tea was very near following, as Meg put out her hand, with a face so full of gratitude that Mr. Brooke would
have felt repaid for a much greater sacrifice than the trifling one of time and comfort which he was about to take.

"How  kind  you  all  are! Mother will accept, I'm sure, and it will be such a relief to know that she has someone to take care of her. Thank you
very, very much!"

Meg spoke earnestly, and forgot herself entirely till something in the brown eyes looking down at her made her remember the cooling tea, and lead
the way into the parlor, saying she would call her mother.

Everything  was  arranged  by the time Laurie returned with a note from Aunt March, enclosing the desired sum, and a few lines repeating what she
had often said before, that she had always told them it was absurd for March to go into the army, always predicted that no good would come of it,
and  she  hoped  they  would  take  her  advice  the next time. Mrs. March put the note in the fire, the money in her purse, and went on with her
preparations, with her lips folded tightly in a way which Jo would have understood if she had been there.

The short afternoon wore away. All other errands were done, and Meg and her mother busy at some necessary needlework, while Beth and Amy got tea,
and  Hannah  finished her ironing with what she called a 'slap and a bang', but still Jo did not come. They began to get anxious, and Laurie went
off  to  find  her,  for  no  one  knew what freak Jo might take into her head. He missed her, however, and she came walking in with a very queer
expression  of  countenance,  for there was a mixture of fun and fear, satisfaction and regret in it, which puzzled the family as much as did the
roll  of  bills she laid before her mother, saying with a little choke in her voice, "That's my contribution toward making Father comfortable and
bringing him home!"

"My dear, where did you get it? Twenty-five dollars! Jo, I hope you haven't done anything rash?"

"No, it's mine honestly. I didn't beg, borrow, or steal it. I earned it, and I don't think you'll blame me, for I only sold what was my own."

As she spoke, Jo took off her bonnet, and a general outcry arose, for all her abundant hair was cut short.

"Your  hair! Your beautiful hair!" "Oh, Jo, how could you? Your one beauty." "My dear girl, there was no need of this." "She doesn't look like my
Jo any more, but I love her dearly for it!"

As  everyone  exclaimed,  and  Beth hugged the cropped head tenderly, Jo assumed an indifferent air, which did not deceive anyone a particle, and
said,  rumpling  up the brown bush and trying to look as if she liked it, "It doesn't affect the fate of the nation, so don't wail, Beth. It will
be  good  for my vanity, I was getting too proud of my wig. It will do my brains good to have that mop taken off. My head feels deliciously light
and cool, and the barber said I could soon have a curly crop, which will be boyish, becoming, and easy to keep in order. I'm satisfied, so please
take the money and let's have supper."

"Tell  me all about it, Jo. I am not quite satisfied, but I can't blame you, for I know how willingly you sacrificed your vanity, as you call it,
to your love. But, my dear, it was not necessary, and I'm afraid you will regret it one of these days," said Mrs. March.

"No, I won't!" returned Jo stoutly, feeling much relieved that her prank was not entirely condemned.

"What made you do it?" asked Amy, who would as soon have thought of cutting off her head as her pretty hair.

"Well,  I  was wild to do something for Father," replied Jo, as they gathered about the table, for healthy young people can eat even in the midst
of  trouble.  "I  hate to borrow as much as Mother does, and I knew Aunt March would croak, she always does, if you ask for a ninepence. Meg gave
all  her  quarterly  salary toward the rent, and I only got some clothes with mine, so I felt wicked, and was bound to have some money, if I sold
the nose off my face to get it."

"You  needn't feel wicked, my child! You had no winter things and got the simplest with your own hard earnings," said Mrs. March with a look that
warmed Jo's heart.

"I  hadn't  the  least  idea of selling my hair at first, but as I went along I kept thinking what I could do, and feeling as if I'd like to dive
into  some  of the rich stores and help myself. In a barber's window I saw tails of hair with the prices marked, and one black tail, not so thick
as  mine, was forty dollars. It came to me all of a sudden that I had one thing to make money out of, and without stopping to think, I walked in,
asked if they bought hair, and what they would give for mine."

"I don't see how you dared to do it," said Beth in a tone of awe.

"Oh, he was a little man who looked as if he merely lived to oil his hair. He rather stared at first, as if he wasn't used to having girls bounce
into his shop and ask him to buy their hair. He said he didn't care about mine, it wasn't the fashionable color, and he never paid much for it in
the  first  place.  The  work  put  into  it  made  it dear, and so on. It was getting late, and I was afraid if it wasn't done right away that I
shouldn't  have it done at all, and you know when I start to do a thing, I hate to give it up. So I begged him to take it, and told him why I was
in  such  a hurry. It was silly, I dare say, but it changed his mind, for I got rather excited, and told the story in my topsy-turvy way, and his
wife  heard, and said so kindly, 'Take it, Thomas, and oblige the young lady. I'd do as much for our Jimmy any day if I had a spire of hair worth
selling."

"Who was Jimmy?" asked Amy, who liked to have things explained as they went along.

"Her  son, she said, who was in the army. How friendly such things make strangers feel, don't they? She talked away all the time the man clipped,
and diverted my mind nicely."

"Didn't you feel dreadfully when the first cut came?" asked Meg, with a shiver.

"I  took  a last look at my hair while the man got his things, and that was the end of it. I never snivel over trifles like that. I will confess,
though,  I  felt  queer when I saw the dear old hair laid out on the table, and felt only the short rough ends of my head. It almost seemed as if
I'd an arm or leg off. The woman saw me look at it, and picked out a long lock for me to keep. I'll give it to you, Marmee, just to remember past
glories by, for a crop is so comfortable I don't think I shall ever have a mane again."

Mrs. March folded the wavy chestnut lock, and laid it away with a short gray one in her desk. She only said, "Thank you, deary," but something in
her  face  made  the  girls  change  the  subject,  and  talk as cheerfully as they could about Mr. Brooke's kindness, the prospect of a fine day
tomorrow, and the happy times they would have when Father came home to be nursed.

No one wanted to go to bed when at ten o'clock Mrs. March put by the last finished job, and said, "Come girls." Beth went to the piano and played
the  father's  favorite hymn. All began bravely, but broke down one by one till Beth was left alone, singing with all her heart, for to her music
was always a sweet consoler.

"Go  to  bed  and  don't talk, for we must be up early and shall need all the sleep we can get. Good night, my darlings," said Mrs. March, as the
hymn ended, for no one cared to try another.

They  kissed  her quietly, and went to bed as silently as if the dear invalid lay in the next room. Beth and Amy soon fell asleep in spite of the
great  trouble,  but  Meg  lay  awake, thinking the most serious thoughts she had ever known in her short life. Jo lay motionless, and her sister
fancied that she was asleep, till a stifled sob made her exclaim, as she touched a wet cheek . . .

"Jo, dear, what is it? Are you crying about father?"

"No, not now."

"What then?"

"My . . . My hair!" burst out poor Jo, trying vainly to smother her emotion in the pillow.

It did not seem at all comical to Meg, who kissed and caressed the afflicted heroine in the tenderest manner.

"I'm  not  sorry,"  protested  Jo, with a choke. "I'd do it again tomorrow, if I could. It's only the vain part of me that goes and cries in this
silly  way. Don't tell anyone, it's all over now. I thought you were asleep, so I just made a little private moan for my one beauty. How came you
to be awake?"

"I can't sleep, I'm so anxious," said Meg.

"Think about something pleasant, and you'll soon drop off."

"I tried it, but felt wider awake than ever."

"What did you think of?"

"Handsome faces--eyes particularly," answered Meg, smiling to herself in the dark.

"What color do you like best?"

"Brown, that is, sometimes. Blue are lovely."

Jo  laughed,  and  Meg  sharply  ordered  her not to talk, then amiably promised to make her hair curl, and fell asleep to dream of living in her
castle in the air.

The clocks were striking midnight and the rooms were very still as a figure glided quietly from bed to bed, smoothing a coverlet here, settling a
pillow there, and pausing to look long and tenderly at each unconscious face, to kiss each with lips that mutely blessed, and to pray the fervent
prayers which only mothers utter. As she lifted the curtain to look out into the dreary night, the moon broke suddenly from behind the clouds and
shone  upon her like a bright, benignant face, which seemed to whisper in the silence, "Be comforted, dear soul! There is always light behind the
clouds."



CHAPTER SIXTEEN

LETTERS

In  the  cold  gray  dawn  the  sisters lit their lamp and read their chapter with an earnestness never felt before. For now the shadow of a real
trouble  had  come, the little books were full of help and comfort, and as they dressed, they agreed to say goodbye cheerfully and hopefully, and
send  their mother on her anxious journey unsaddened by tears or complaints from them. Everything seemed very strange when they went down, so dim
and  still outside, so full of light and bustle within. Breakfast at that early hour seemed odd, and even Hannah's familiar face looked unnatural
as  she flew about her kitchen with her nightcap on. The big trunk stood ready in the hall, Mother's cloak and bonnet lay on the sofa, and Mother
herself  sat  trying  to  eat,  but  looking  so  pale  and  worn  with sleeplessness and anxiety that the girls found it very hard to keep their
resolution.  Meg's  eyes  kept  filling in spite of herself, Jo was obliged to hide her face in the kitchen roller more than once, and the little
girls wore a grave, troubled expression, as if sorrow was a new experience to them.

Nobody talked much, but as the time drew very near and they sat waiting for the carriage, Mrs. March said to the girls, who were all busied about
her,  one  folding  her  shawl,  another smoothing out the strings of her bonnet, a third putting on her overshoes, and a fourth fastening up her
travelling bag . . .

"Children,  I leave you to Hannah's care and Mr. Laurence's protection. Hannah is faithfulness itself, and our good neighbor will guard you as if
you  were  his own. I have no fears for you, yet I am anxious that you should take this trouble rightly. Don't grieve and fret when I am gone, or
think  that  you  can  be  idle  and  comfort yourselves by being idle and trying to forget. Go on with your work as usual, for work is a blessed
solace. Hope and keep busy, and whatever happens, remember that you never can be fatherless."

"Yes, Mother."

"Meg,  dear, be prudent, watch over your sisters, consult Hannah, and in any perplexity, go to Mr. Laurence. Be patient, Jo, don't get despondent
or  do rash things, write to me often, and be my brave girl, ready to help and cheer all. Beth, comfort yourself with your music, and be faithful
to the little home duties, and you, Amy, help all you can, be obedient, and keep happy safe at home."

"We will, Mother! We will!"

The rattle of an approaching carriage made them all start and listen. That was the hard minute, but the girls stood it well. No one cried, no one
ran away or uttered a lamentation, though their hearts were very heavy as they sent loving messages to Father, remembering, as they spoke that it
might  be too late to deliver them. They kissed their mother quietly, clung about her tenderly, and tried to wave their hands cheerfully when she
drove away.

Laurie  and  his  grandfather  came over to see her off, and Mr. Brooke looked so strong and sensible and kind that the girls christened him 'Mr.
Greatheart' on the spot.

"Goodby,  my darlings! God bless and keep us all!" whispered Mrs. March, as she kissed one dear little face after the other, and hurried into the
carriage.

As  she  rolled  away,  the  sun  came out, and looking back, she saw it shining on the group at the gate like a good omen. They saw it also, and
smiled and waved their hands, and the last thing she beheld as she turned the corner was the four bright faces, and behind them like a bodyguard,
old Mr. Laurence, faithful Hannah, and devoted Laurie.

"How kind everyone is to us!" she said, turning to find fresh proof of it in the respectful sympathy of the young man's face.

"I  don't  see  how  they  can help it," returned Mr. Brooke, laughing so infectiously that Mrs. March could not help smiling. And so the journey
began with the good omens of sunshine, smiles, and cheerful words.

"I feel as if there had been an earthquake," said Jo, as their neighbors went home to breakfast, leaving them to rest and refresh themselves.

"It seems as if half the house was gone," added Meg forlornly.

Beth  opened  her lips to say something, but could only point to the pile of nicely mended hose which lay on Mother's table, showing that even in
her  last hurried moments she had thought and worked for them. It was a little thing, but it went straight to their hearts, and in spite of their
brave resolutions, they all broke down and cried bitterly.

Hannah  wisely  allowed  them  to  relieve  their feelings, and when the shower showed signs of clearing up, she came to the rescue, armed with a
coffeepot.

"Now,  my dear young ladies, remember what your ma said, and don't fret. Come and have a cup of coffee all round, and then let's fall to work and
be a credit to the family."

Coffee  was  a treat, and Hannah showed great tact in making it that morning. No one could resist her persuasive nods, or the fragrant invitation
issuing  from the nose of the coffee pot. They drew up to the table, exchanged their handkerchiefs for napkins, and in ten minutes were all right
again.

"'Hope and keep busy', that's the motto for us, so let's see who will remember it best. I shall go to Aunt March, as usual. Oh, won't she lecture
though!" said Jo, as she sipped with returning spirit.

"I shall go to my Kings, though I'd much rather stay at home and attend to things here," said Meg, wishing she hadn't made her eyes so red.

"No need of that. Beth and I can keep house perfectly well," put in Amy, with an important air.

"Hannah will tell us what to do, and we'll have everything nice when you come home," added Beth, getting out her mop and dish tub without delay.

"I think anxiety is very interesting," observed Amy, eating sugar pensively.

The girls couldn't help laughing, and felt better for it, though Meg shook her head at the young lady who could find consolation in a sugar bowl.

The  sight of the turnovers made Jo sober again; and when the two went out to their daily tasks, they looked sorrowfully back at the window where
they  were  accustomed to see their mother's face. It was gone, but Beth had remembered the little household ceremony, and there she was, nodding
away at them like a rosyfaced mandarin.

"That's  so  like my Beth!" said Jo, waving her hat, with a grateful face. "Goodbye, Meggy, I hope the Kings won't strain today. Don't fret about
Father, dear," she added, as they parted.

"And  I  hope  Aunt  March won't croak. Your hair is becoming, and it looks very boyish and nice," returned Meg, trying not to smile at the curly
head, which looked comically small on her tall sister's shoulders.

"That's my only comfort." And, touching her hat a la Laurie, away went Jo, feeling like a shorn sheep on a wintry day.

News  from  their  father comforted the girls very much, for though dangerously ill, the presence of the best and tenderest of nurses had already
done  him  good.  Mr.  Brooke  sent  a bulletin every day, and as the head of the family, Meg insisted on reading the dispatches, which grew more
cheerful  as the week passed. At first, everyone was eager to write, and plump envelopes were carefully poked into the letter box by one or other
of  the  sisters, who felt rather important with their Washington correspondence. As one of these packets contained characteristic notes from the
party, we will rob an imaginary mail, and read them.

My dearest Mother:

It  is impossible to tell you how happy your last letter made us, for the news was so good we couldn't help laughing and crying over it. How very
kind  Mr.  Brooke  is,  and how fortunate that Mr. Laurence's business detains him near you so long, since he is so useful to you and Father. The
girls  are all as good as gold. Jo helps me with the sewing, and insists on doing all sorts of hard jobs. I should be afraid she might overdo, if
I didn't know her 'moral fit' wouldn't last long. Beth is as regular about her tasks as a clock, and never forgets what you told her. She grieves
about  Father,  and looks sober except when she is at her little piano. Amy minds me nicely, and I take great care of her. She does her own hair,
and  I  am teaching her to make buttonholes and mend her stockings. She tries very hard, and I know you will be pleased with her improvement when
you  come. Mr. Laurence watches over us like a motherly old hen, as Jo says, and Laurie is very kind and neighborly. He and Jo keep us merry, for
we get pretty blue sometimes, and feel like orphans, with you so far away. Hannah is a perfect saint. She does not scold at all, and always calls
me  Miss Margaret, which is quite proper, you know, and treats me with respect. We are all well and busy, but we long, day and night, to have you
back. Give my dearest love to Father, and believe me, ever your own . . .

MEG

This  note,  prettily  written  on  scented  paper,  was  a great contrast to the next, which was scribbled on a big sheet of thin foreign paper,
ornamented with blots and all manner of flourishes and curly-tailed letters.

My precious Marmee:

Three  cheers  for  dear Father! Brooke was a trump to telegraph right off, and let us know the minute he was better. I rushed up garret when the
letter  came,  and  tried  to thank god for being so good to us, but I could only cry, and say, "I'm glad! I'm glad!" Didn't that do as well as a
regular  prayer?  For  I  felt a great many in my heart. We have such funny times, and now I can enjoy them, for everyone is so desperately good,
it's like living in a nest of turtledoves. You'd laugh to see Meg head the table and try to be motherish. She gets prettier every day, and I'm in
love  with  her sometimes. The children are regular archangels, and I--well, I'm Jo, and never shall be anything else. Oh, I must tell you that I
came  near  having  a  quarrel  with  Laurie. I freed my mind about a silly little thing, and he was offended. I was right, but didn't speak as I
ought,  and he marched home, saying he wouldn't come again till I begged pardon. I declared I wouldn't and got mad. It lasted all day. I felt bad
and  wanted  you  very  much.  Laurie and I are both so proud, it's hard to beg pardon. But I thought he'd come to it, for I was in the right. He
didn't  come,  and just at night I remembered what you said when Amy fell into the river. I read my little book, felt better, resolved not to let
the  sun set on my anger, and ran over to tell Laurie I was sorry. I met him at the gate, coming for the same thing. We both laughed, begged each
other's pardon, and felt all good and comfortable again.

I  made  a  'pome'  yesterday,  when I was helping Hannah wash, and as Father likes my silly little things, I put it in to amuse him. Give him my
lovingest hug that ever was, and kiss yourself a dozen times for your . . .

TOPSY-TURVY JO


A SONG FROM THE SUDS

Queen  of my tub, I merrily sing, While the white foam rises high, And sturdily wash and rinse and wring, And fasten the clothes to dry. Then out
in the free fresh air they swing, Under the sunny sky.

I  wish we could wash from our hearts and souls The stains of the week away, And let water and air by their magic make Ourselves as pure as they.
Then on the earth there would be indeed, A glorious washing day!

Along  the path of a useful life, Will heartsease ever bloom. The busy mind has no time to think Of sorrow or care or gloom. And anxious thoughts
may be swept away, As we bravely wield a broom.

I am glad a task to me is given, To labor at day by day, For it brings me health and strength and hope, And I cheerfully learn to say, "Head, you
may think, Heart, you may feel, But, Hand, you shall work alway!"


Dear Mother,

There is only room for me to send my love, and some pressed pansies from the root I have been keeping safe in the house for Father to see. I read
every  morning,  try  to  be  good  all  day,  and sing myself to sleep with Father's tune. I can't sing 'LAND OF THE LEAL' now, it makes me cry.
Everyone is very kind, and we are as happy as we can be without you. Amy wants the rest of the page, so I must stop. I didn't forget to cover the
holders, and I wind the clock and air the rooms every day.

Kiss dear Father on the cheek he calls mine. Oh, do come soon to your loving . . .

LITTLE BETH


Ma Chere Mamma,

We  are  all  well I do my lessons always and never corroberate the girls--Meg says I mean contradick so I put in both words and you can take the
properest.  Meg is a great comfort to me and lets me have jelly every night at tea its so good for me Jo says because it keeps me sweet tempered.
Laurie  is  not as respeckful as he ought to be now I am almost in my teens, he calls me Chick and hurts my feelings by talking French to me very
fast  when  I  say  Merci  or Bon jour as Hattie King does. The sleeves of my blue dress were all worn out, and Meg put in new ones, but the full
front  came  wrong and they are more blue than the dress. I felt bad but did not fret I bear my troubles well but I do wish Hannah would put more
starch  in my aprons and have buckwheats every day. Can't she? Didn't I make that interrigation point nice? Meg says my punchtuation and spelling
are  disgraceful and I am mortyfied but dear me I have so many things to do, I can't stop. Adieu, I send heaps of love to Papa. Your affectionate
daughter . . .

AMY CURTIS MARCH


Dear Mis March,

I jes drop a line to say we git on fust rate. The girls is clever and fly round right smart. Miss Meg is going to make a proper good housekeeper.
She  hes  the liking for it, and gits the hang of things surprisin quick. Jo doos beat all for goin ahead, but she don't stop to cal'k'late fust,
and you never know where she's like to bring up. She done out a tub of clothes on Monday, but she starched 'em afore they was wrenched, and blued
a  pink calico dress till I thought I should a died a laughin. Beth is the best of little creeters, and a sight of help to me, bein so forehanded
and  dependable.  She  tries  to  learn  everything,  and  really  goes  to market beyond her years, likewise keeps accounts, with my help, quite
wonderful.  We have got on very economical so fur. I don't let the girls hev coffee only once a week, accordin to your wish, and keep em on plain
wholesome  vittles.  Amy  does well without frettin, wearin her best clothes and eatin sweet stuff. Mr. Laurie is as full of didoes as usual, and
turns  the  house  upside  down  frequent, but he heartens the girls, so I let em hev full swing. The old gentleman sends heaps of things, and is
rather wearin, but means wal, and it aint my place to say nothin. My bread is riz, so no more at this time. I send my duty to Mr. March, and hope
he's seen the last of his Pewmonia.

Yours respectful,

Hannah Mullet


Head Nurse of Ward No. 2,


All serene on the Rappahannock, troops in fine condition, commisary department well conducted, the Home Guard under Colonel Teddy always on duty,
Commander in Chief General Laurence reviews the army daily, Quartermaster Mullet keeps order in camp, and Major Lion does picket duty at night. A
salute  of  twenty-four guns was fired on reciept of good news from Washington, and a dress parade took place at headquarters. Commander in chief
sends best wishes, in which he is heartily joined by . . .

COLONEL TEDDY


Dear Madam:

The  little  girls  are  all  well.  Beth  and my boy report daily. Hannah is a model servant, and guards pretty Meg like a dragon. Glad the fine
weather  holds.  Pray  make Brooke useful, and draw on me for funds if expenses exceed your estimate. Don't let your husband want anything. Thank
God he is mending.

Your sincere friend and servant, JAMES LAURENCE



CHAPTER SEVENTEEN

LITTLE FAITHFUL

For  a  week the amount of virtue in the old house would have supplied the neighborhood. It was really amazing, for everyone seemed in a heavenly
frame  of  mind,  and  self-denial  was  all  the fashion. Relieved of their first anxiety about their father, the girls insensibly relaxed their
praiseworthy  efforts a little, and began to fall back into old ways. They did not forget their motto, but hoping and keeping busy seemed to grow
easier, and after such tremendous exertions, they felt that Endeavor deserved a holiday, and gave it a good many.

Jo  caught  a bad cold through neglect to cover the shorn head enough, and was ordered to stay at home till she was better, for Aunt March didn't
like  to hear people read with colds in their heads. Jo liked this, and after an energetic rummage from garret to cellar, subsided on the sofa to
nurse  her cold with arsenicum and books. Amy found that housework and art did not go well together, and returned to her mud pies. Meg went daily
to  her  pupils, and sewed, or thought she did, at home, but much time was spent in writing long letters to her mother, or reading the Washington
dispatches over and over. Beth kept on, with only slight relapses into idleness or grieving.

All  the  little  duties were faithfully done each day, and many of her sisters' also, for they were forgetful, and the house seemed like a clock
whose  pendulum  was gone a-visiting. When her heart got heavy with longings for Mother or fears for Father, she went away into a certain closet,
hid  her face in the folds of a dear old gown, and made her little moan and prayed her little prayer quietly by herself. Nobody knew what cheered
her  up  after  a sober fit, but everyone felt how sweet and helpful Beth was, and fell into a way of going to her for comfort or advice in their
small affairs.

All  were  unconscious  that  this  experience  was a test of character, and when the first excitement was over, felt that they had done well and
deserved praise. So they did, but their mistake was in ceasing to do well, and they learned this lesson through much anxiety and regret.

"Meg, I wish you'd go and see the Hummels. You know Mother told us not to forget them." said Beth, ten days after Mrs. March's departure.

"I'm too tired to go this afternoon," replied Meg, rocking comfortably as she sewed.

"Can't you, Jo?" asked Beth.

"Too stormy for me with my cold."

"I thought it was almost well."

"It's  well  enough  for me to go out with Laurie, but not well enough to go to the Hummels'," said Jo, laughing, but looking a little ashamed of
her inconsistency.

"Why don't you go yourself?" asked Meg.

"I  have  been every day, but the baby is sick, and I don't know what to do for it. Mrs. Hummel goes away to work, and Lottchen takes care of it.
But it gets sicker and sicker, and I think you or Hannah ought to go."

Beth spoke earnestly, and Meg promised she would go tomorrow.

"Ask  Hannah for some nice little mess, and take it round, Beth, the air will do you good," said Jo, adding apologetically, "I'd go but I want to
finish my writing."

"My head aches and I'm tired, so I thought maybe some of you would go," said Beth.

"Amy will be in presently, and she will run down for us," suggested Meg.

So  Beth  lay  down on the sofa, the others returned to their work, and the Hummels were forgotten. An hour passed. Amy did not come, Meg went to
her  room  to try on a new dress, Jo was absorbed in her story, and Hannah was sound asleep before the kitchen fire, when Beth quietly put on her
hood,  filled  her  basket with odds and ends for the poor children, and went out into the chilly air with a heavy head and a grieved look in her
patient  eyes.  It was late when she came back, and no one saw her creep upstairs and shut herself into her mother's room. Half an hour after, Jo
went  to  'Mother's  closet'  for  something,  and there found little Beth sitting on the medicine chest, looking very grave, with red eyes and a
camphor bottle in her hand.

"Christopher Columbus! What's the matter?" cried Jo, as Beth put out her hand as if to warn her off, and asked quickly. . .

"You've had the scarlet fever, haven't you?"

"Years ago, when Meg did. Why?"

"Then I'll tell you. Oh, Jo, the baby's dead!"

"What baby?"

"Mrs. Hummel's. It died in my lap before she got home," cried Beth with a sob.

"My  poor  dear,  how  dreadful for you! I ought to have gone," said Jo, taking her sister in her arms as she sat down in her mother's big chair,
with a remorseful face.

"It wasn't dreadful, Jo, only so sad! I saw in a minute it was sicker, but Lottchen said her mother had gone for a doctor, so I took Baby and let
Lotty rest. It seemed asleep, but all of a sudden if gave a little cry and trembled, and then lay very still. I tried to warm its feet, and Lotty
gave it some milk, but it didn't stir, and I knew it was dead."

"Don't cry, dear! What did you do?"

"I  just  sat  and  held  it  softly  till Mrs. Hummel came with the doctor. He said it was dead, and looked at Heinrich and Minna, who have sore
throats.  'Scarlet  fever, ma'am. Ought to have called me before,' he said crossly. Mrs. Hummel told him she was poor, and had tried to cure baby
herself, but now it was too late, and she could only ask him to help the others and trust to charity for his pay. He smiled then, and was kinder,
but  it  was  very sad, and I cried with them till he turned round all of a sudden, and told me to go home and take belladonna right away, or I'd
have the fever."

"No,  you  won't!" cried Jo, hugging her close, with a frightened look. "Oh, Beth, if you should be sick I never could forgive myself! What shall
we do?"

"Don't  be  frightened,  I  guess I shan't have it badly. I looked in Mother's book, and saw that it begins with headache, sore throat, and queer
feelings  like  mine,  so I did take some belladonna, and I feel better," said Beth, laying her cold hands on her hot forehead and trying to look
well.

"If  Mother  was  only  at  home!" exclaimed Jo, seizing the book, and feeling that Washington was an immense way off. She read a page, looked at
Beth,  felt  her  head,  peeped  into her throat, and then said gravely, "You've been over the baby every day for more than a week, and among the
others who are going to have it, so I'm afraid you are going to have it, Beth. I'll call Hannah, she knows all about sickness."

"Don't let Amy come. She never had it, and I should hate to give it to her. Can't you and Meg have it over again?" asked Beth, anxiously.

"I  guess  not.  Don't  care  if  I do. Serve me right, selfish pig, to let you go, and stay writing rubbish myself!" muttered Jo, as she went to
consult Hannah.

The  good  soul was wide awake in a minute, and took the lead at once, assuring that there was no need to worry; every one had scarlet fever, and
if rightly treated, nobody died, all of which Jo believed, and felt much relieved as they went up to call Meg.

"Now  I'll  tell you what we'll do," said Hannah, when she had examined and questioned Beth, "we will have Dr. Bangs, just to take a look at you,
dear,  and  see that we start right. Then we'll send Amy off to Aunt March's for a spell, to keep her out of harm's way, and one of you girls can
stay at home and amuse Beth for a day or two."

"I shall stay, of course, I'm oldest," began Meg, looking anxious and self-reproachful.

"I shall, because it's my fault she is sick. I told Mother I'd do the errands, and I haven't," said Jo decidedly.

"Which will you have, Beth? There ain't no need of but one," aid Hannah.

"Jo, please." And Beth leaned her head against her sister with a contented look, which effectually settled that point.

"I'll go and tell Amy," said Meg, feeling a little hurt, yet rather relieved on the whole, for she did not like nursing, and Jo did.

Amy  rebelled outright, and passionately declared that she had rather have the fever than go to Aunt March. Meg reasoned, pleaded, and commanded,
all  in  vain.  Amy  protested that she would not go, and Meg left her in despair to ask Hannah what should be done. Before she came back, Laurie
walked into the parlor to find Amy sobbing, with her head in the sofa cushions. She told her story, expecting to be consoled, but Laurie only put
his hands in his pockets and walked about the room, whistling softly, as he knit his brows in deep thought. Presently he sat down beside her, and
said,  in his most wheedlesome tone, "Now be a sensible little woman, and do as they say. No, don't cry, but hear what a jolly plan I've got. You
go  to Aunt March's, and I'll come and take you out every day, driving or walking, and we'll have capital times. Won't that be better than moping
here?"

"I don't wish to be sent off as if I was in the way," began Amy, in an injured voice.

"Bless your heart, child, it's to keep you well. You don't want to be sick, do you?"

"No, I'm sure I don't, but I dare say I shall be, for I've been with Beth all the time."

"That's  the very reason you ought to go away at once, so that you may escape it. Change of air and care will keep you well, I dare say, or if it
does not entirely, you will have the fever more lightly. I advise you to be off as soon as you can, for scarlet fever is no joke, miss."

"But it's dull at Aunt March's, and she is so cross," said Amy, looking rather frightened.

"It  won't  be  dull  with  me popping in every day to tell you how Beth is, and take you out gallivanting. The old lady likes me, and I'll be as
sweet as possible to her, so she won't peck at us, whatever we do."

"Will you take me out in the trotting wagon with Puck?"

"On my honor as a gentleman."

"And come every single day?"

"See if I don't!"

"And bring me back the minute Beth is well?"

"The identical minute."

"And go to the theater, truly?"

"A dozen theaters, if we may."

"Well--I guess I will," said Amy slowly.

"Good girl! Call Meg, and tell her you'll give in," said Laurie, with an approving pat, which annoyed Amy more than the 'giving in'.

Meg  and  Jo came running down to behold the miracle which had been wrought, and Amy, feeling very precious and self-sacrificing, promised to go,
if the doctor said Beth was going to be ill.

"How is the little dear?" asked Laurie, for Beth was his especial pet, and he felt more anxious about her than he liked to show.

"She is lying down on Mother's bed, and feels better. The baby's death troubled her, but I dare say she has only got cold. Hannah says she thinks
so, but she looks worried, and that makes me fidgety," answered Meg.

"What  a  trying  world  it is!" said Jo, rumpling up her hair in a fretful way. "No sooner do we get out of one trouble than down comes another.
There doesn't seem to be anything to hold on to when Mother's gone, so I'm all at sea."

"Well,  don't  make  a  porcupine  of  yourself,  it  isn't becoming. Settle your wig, Jo, and tell me if I shall telegraph to your mother, or do
anything?" asked Laurie, who never had been reconciled to the loss of his friend's one beauty.

"That  is  what  troubles  me," said Meg. "I think we ought to tell her if Beth is really ill, but Hannah says we mustn't, for Mother can't leave
Father,  and it will only make them anxious. Beth won't be sick long, and Hannah knows just what to do, and Mother said we were to mind her, so I
suppose we must, but it doesn't seem quite right to me."

"Hum, well, I can't say. Suppose you ask Grandfather after the doctor has been."

"We will. Jo, go and get Dr. Bangs at once," commanded Meg. "We can't decide anything till he has been."

"Stay where you are, Jo. I'm errand boy to this establishment," said Laurie, taking up his cap.

"I'm afraid you are busy," began Meg.

"No, I've done my lessons for the day."

"Do you study in vacation time?" asked Jo.

"I follow the good example my neighbors set me," was Laurie's answer, as he swung himself out of the room.

"I have great hopes for my boy," observed Jo, watching him fly over the fence with an approving smile.

"He does very well, for a boy," was Meg's somewhat ungracious answer, for the subject did not interest her.

Dr.  Bangs came, said Beth had symptoms of the fever, but he thought she would have it lightly, though he looked sober over the Hummel story. Amy
was ordered off at once, and provided with something to ward off danger, she departed in great state, with Jo and Laurie as escort.

Aunt March received them with her usual hospitality.

"What do you want now?" she asked, looking sharply over her spectacles, while the parrot, sitting on the back of her chair, called out . . .

"Go away. No boys allowed here."

Laurie retired to the window, and Jo told her story.

"No  more  than I expected, if you are allowed to go poking about among poor folks. Amy can stay and make herself useful if she isn't sick, which
I've no doubt she will be, looks like it now. Don't cry, child, it worries me to hear people sniff."

Amy  was  on the point of crying, but Laurie slyly pulled the parrot's tail, which caused Polly to utter an astonished croak and call out, "Bless
my boots!" in such a funny way, that she laughed instead.

"What do you hear from your mother?" asked the old lady gruffly.

"Father is much better," replied Jo, trying to keep sober.

"Oh, is he? Well, that won't last long, I fancy. March never had any stamina," was the cheerful reply.

"Ha,  ha!  Never  say  die,  take a pinch of snuff, goodbye, goodbye!" squalled Polly, dancing on her perch, and clawing at the old lady's cap as
Laurie tweaked him in the rear.

"Hold  your  tongue, you disrespectful old bird! And, Jo, you'd better go at once. It isn't proper to be gadding about so late with a rattlepated
boy like . . ."

"Hold your tongue, you disrespectful old bird!" cried Polly, tumbling off the chair with a bounce, and running to peck the 'rattlepated' boy, who
was shaking with laughter at the last speech.

"I don't think I can bear it, but I'll try," thought Amy, as she was left alone with Aunt March.

"Get along, you fright!" screamed Polly, and at that rude speech Amy could not restrain a sniff.



CHAPTER EIGHTEEN

DARK DAYS

Beth  did  have  the  fever,  and  was much sicker than anyone but Hannah and the doctor suspected. The girls knew nothing about illness, and Mr.
Laurence was not allowed to see her, so Hannah had everything her own way, and busy Dr. Bangs did his best, but left a good deal to the excellent
nurse.  Meg  stayed at home, lest she should infect the Kings, and kept house, feeling very anxious and a little guilty when she wrote letters in
which  no  mention  was  made  of Beth's illness. She could not think it right to deceive her mother, but she had been bidden to mind Hannah, and
Hannah wouldn't hear of 'Mrs. March bein' told, and worried just for sech a trifle.'

Jo  devoted  herself  to  Beth  day and night, not a hard task, for Beth was very patient, and bore her pain uncomplainingly as long as she could
control  herself.  But there came a time when during the fever fits she began to talk in a hoarse, broken voice, to play on the coverlet as if on
her  beloved little piano, and try to sing with a throat so swollen that there was no music left, a time when she did not know the familiar faces
around  her, but addressed them by wrong names, and called imploringly for her mother. Then Jo grew frightened, Meg begged to be allowed to write
the truth, and even Hannah said she 'would think of it, though there was no danger yet'. A letter from Washington added to their trouble, for Mr.
March had had a relapse, and could not think of coming home for a long while.

How  dark  the  days  seemed now, how sad and lonely the house, and how heavy were the hearts of the sisters as they worked and waited, while the
shadow  of  death hovered over the once happy home. Then it was that Margaret, sitting alone with tears dropping often on her work, felt how rich
she  had been in things more precious than any luxuries money could buy--in love, protection, peace, and health, the real blessings of life. Then
it  was  that  Jo,  living in the darkened room, with that suffering little sister always before her eyes and that pathetic voice sounding in her
ears,  learned  to  see  the  beauty  and  the  sweetness  of Beth's nature, to feel how deep and tender a place she filled in all hearts, and to
acknowledge the worth of Beth's unselfish ambition to live for others, and make home happy by that exercise of those simple virtues which all may
possess,  and  which all should love and value more than talent, wealth, or beauty. And Amy, in her exile, longed eagerly to be at home, that she
might  work for Beth, feeling now that no service would be hard or irksome, and remembering, with regretful grief, how many neglected tasks those
willing  hands  had  done  for her. Laurie haunted the house like a restless ghost, and Mr. Laurence locked the grand piano, because he could not
bear  to  be reminded of the young neighbor who used to make the twilight pleasant for him. Everyone missed Beth. The milkman, baker, grocer, and
butcher  inquired  how she did, poor Mrs. Hummel came to beg pardon for her thoughtlessness and to get a shroud for Minna, the neighbors sent all
sorts of comforts and good wishes, and even those who knew her best were surprised to find how many friends shy little Beth had made.

Meanwhile  she  lay on her bed with old Joanna at her side, for even in her wanderings she did not forget her forlorn protege. She longed for her
cats,  but  would  not  have  them  brought,  lest they should get sick, and in her quiet hours she was full of anxiety about Jo. She sent loving
messages  to  Amy,  bade  them tell her mother that she would write soon, and often begged for pencil and paper to try to say a word, that Father
might  not  think  she  had neglected him. But soon even these intervals of consciousness ended, and she lay hour after hour, tossing to and fro,
with  incoherent  words  on  her  lips, or sank into a heavy sleep which brought her no refreshment. Dr. Bangs came twice a day, Hannah sat up at
night, Meg kept a telegram in her desk all ready to send off at any minute, and Jo never stirred from Beth's side.

The  first  of December was a wintry day indeed to them, for a bitter wind blew, snow fell fast, and the year seemed getting ready for its death.
When  Dr.  Bangs came that morning, he looked long at Beth, held the hot hand in both his own for a minute, and laid it gently down, saying, in a
low voice to Hannah, "If Mrs. March can leave her husband she'd better be sent for."

Hannah  nodded  without speaking, for her lips twitched nervously, Meg dropped down into a chair as the strength seemed to go out of her limbs at
the  sound  of  those  words,  and  Jo,  standing with a pale face for a minute, ran to the parlor, snatched up the telegram, and throwing on her
things,  rushed  out into the storm. She was soon back, and while noiselessly taking off her cloak, Laurie came in with a letter, saying that Mr.
March  was  mending again. Jo read it thankfully, but the heavy weight did not seem lifted off her heart, and her face was so full of misery that
Laurie asked quickly, "What is it? Is Beth worse?"

"I've sent for Mother," said Jo, tugging at her rubber boots with a tragic expression.

"Good for you, Jo! Did you do it on your own responsibility?" asked Laurie, as he seated her in the hall chair and took off the rebellious boots,
seeing how her hands shook.

"No. The doctor told us to."

"Oh, Jo, it's not so bad as that?" cried Laurie, with a startled face.

"Yes,  it  is.  She doesn't know us, she doesn't even talk about the flocks of green doves, as she calls the vine leaves on the wall. She doesn't
look like my Beth, and there's nobody to help us bear it. Mother and father both gone, and God seems so far away I can't find Him."

As  the  tears  streamed  fast down poor Jo's cheeks, she stretched out her hand in a helpless sort of way, as if groping in the dark, and Laurie
took it in his, whispering as well as he could with a lump in his throat, "I'm here. Hold on to me, Jo, dear!"

She could not speak, but she did 'hold on', and the warm grasp of the friendly human hand comforted her sore heart, and seemed to lead her nearer
to the Divine arm which alone could uphold her in her trouble.

Laurie longed to say something tender and comfortable, but no fitting words came to him, so he stood silent, gently stroking her bent head as her
mother  used  to do. It was the best thing he could have done, far more soothing than the most eloquent words, for Jo felt the unspoken sympathy,
and in the silence learned the sweet solace which affection administers to sorrow. Soon she dried the tears which had relieved her, and looked up
with a grateful face.

"Thank you, Teddy, I'm better now. I don't feel so forlorn, and will try to bear it if it comes."

"Keep hoping for the best, that will help you, Jo. Soon your mother will be here, and then everything will be all right."

"I'm so glad Father is better. Now she won't feel so bad about leaving him. Oh, me! It does seem as if all the troubles came in a heap, and I got
the heaviest part on my shoulders," sighed Jo, spreading her wet handkerchief over her knees to dry.

"Doesn't Meg pull fair?" asked Laurie, looking indignant.

"Oh,  yes,  she  tries to, but she can't love Bethy as I do, and she won't miss her as I shall. Beth is my conscience, and I can't give her up. I
can't! I can't!"

Down  went  Jo's  face  into the wet handkerchief, and she cried despairingly, for she had kept up bravely till now and never shed a tear. Laurie
drew  his  hand  across  his  eyes,  but  could  not speak till he had subdued the choky feeling in his throat and steadied his lips. It might be
unmanly,  but he couldn't help it, and I am glad of it. Presently, as Jo's sobs quieted, he said hopefully, "I don't think she will die. She's so
good, and we all love her so much, I don't believe God will take her away yet."

"The  good  and  dear people always do die," groaned Jo, but she stopped crying, for her friend's words cheered her up in spite of her own doubts
and fears.

"Poor girl, you're worn out. It isn't like you to be forlorn. Stop a bit. I'll hearten you up in a jiffy."

Laurie  went off two stairs at a time, and Jo laid her wearied head down on Beth's little brown hood, which no one had thought of moving from the
table  where  she  left  it.  It  must have possessed some magic, for the submissive spirit of its gentle owner seemed to enter into Jo, and when
Laurie  came  running  down with a glass of wine, she took it with a smile, and said bravely, "I drink--Health to my Beth! You are a good doctor,
Teddy, and such a comfortable friend. How can I ever pay you?" she added, as the wine refreshed her body, as the kind words had done her troubled
mind.

"I'll  send  my  bill,  by-and-by, and tonight I'll give you something that will warm the cockles of your heart better than quarts of wine," said
Laurie, beaming at her with a face of suppressed satisfaction at something.

"What is it?" cried Jo, forgetting her woes for a minute in her wonder.

"I  telegraphed  to  your mother yesterday, and Brooke answered she'd come at once, and she'll be here tonight, and everything will be all right.
Aren't you glad I did it?"

Laurie  spoke  very  fast,  and turned red and excited all in a minute, for he had kept his plot a secret, for fear of disappointing the girls or
harming  Beth.  Jo grew quite white, flew out of her chair, and the moment he stopped speaking she electrified him by throwing her arms round his
neck,  and  crying out, with a joyful cry, "Oh, Laurie! Oh, Mother! I am so glad!" She did not weep again, but laughed hysterically, and trembled
and clung to her friend as if she was a little bewildered by the sudden news.

Laurie,  though  decidedly  amazed,  behaved  with  great  presence  of mind. He patted her back soothingly, and finding that she was recovering,
followed  it  up  by  a  bashful  kiss  or  two,  which  brought  Jo  round at once. Holding on to the banisters, she put him gently away, saying
breathlessly,  "Oh,  don't!  I didn't mean to, it was dreadful of me, but you were such a dear to go and do it in spite of Hannah that I couldn't
help flying at you. Tell me all about it, and don't give me wine again, it makes me act so."

"I  don't  mind,"  laughed  Laurie,  as  he settled his tie. "Why, you see I got fidgety, and so did Grandpa. We thought Hannah was overdoing the
authority business, and your mother ought to know. She'd never forgive us if Beth . . . Well, if anything happened, you know. So I got grandpa to
say  it  was  high time we did something, and off I pelted to the office yesterday, for the doctor looked sober, and Hannah most took my head off
when  I  proposed a telegram. I never can bear to be 'lorded over', so that settled my mind, and I did it. Your mother will come, I know, and the
late  train  is in at two A.M. I shall go for her, and you've only got to bottle up your rapture, and keep Beth quiet till that blessed lady gets
here."

"Laurie, you're an angel! How shall I ever thank you?"

"Fly at me again. I rather liked it," said Laurie, looking mischievous, a thing he had not done for a fortnight.

"No,  thank  you.  I'll  do  it by proxy, when your grandpa comes. Don't tease, but go home and rest, for you'll be up half the night. Bless you,
Teddy, bless you!"

Jo  had  backed into a corner, and as she finished her speech, she vanished precipitately into the kitchen, where she sat down upon a dresser and
told the assembled cats that she was "happy, oh, so happy!" while Laurie departed, feeling that he had made a rather neat thing of it.

"That's  the  interferingest chap I ever see, but I forgive him and do hope Mrs. March is coming right away," said Hannah, with an air of relief,
when Jo told the good news.

Meg had a quiet rapture, and then brooded over the letter, while Jo set the sickroom in order, and Hannah "knocked up a couple of pies in case of
company  unexpected".  A  breath  of  fresh  air seemed to blow through the house, and something better than sunshine brightened the quiet rooms.
Everything  appeared  to  feel  the  hopeful  change. Beth's bird began to chirp again, and a half-blown rose was discovered on Amy's bush in the
window.  The  fires  seemed  to burn with unusual cheeriness, and every time the girls met, their pale faces broke into smiles as they hugged one
another,  whispering  encouragingly,  "Mother's  coming, dear! Mother's coming!" Every one rejoiced but Beth. She lay in that heavy stupor, alike
unconscious  of hope and joy, doubt and danger. It was a piteous sight, the once rosy face so changed and vacant, the once busy hands so weak and
wasted, the once smiling lips quite dumb, and the once pretty, well-kept hair scattered rough and tangled on the pillow. All day she lay so, only
rousing  now  and  then to mutter, "Water!" with lips so parched they could hardly shape the word. All day Jo and Meg hovered over her, watching,
waiting,  hoping,  and  trusting  in God and Mother, and all day the snow fell, the bitter wind raged, and the hours dragged slowly by. But night
came  at last, and every time the clock struck, the sisters, still sitting on either side of the bed, looked at each other with brightening eyes,
for each hour brought help nearer. The doctor had been in to say that some change, for better or worse, would probably take place about midnight,
at which time he would return.

Hannah,  quite worn out, lay down on the sofa at the bed's foot and fell fast asleep, Mr. Laurence marched to and fro in the parlor, feeling that
he  would  rather  face a rebel battery than Mrs. March's countenance as she entered. Laurie lay on the rug, pretending to rest, but staring into
the fire with the thoughtful look which made his black eyes beautifully soft and clear.

The  girls  never forgot that night, for no sleep came to them as they kept their watch, with that dreadful sense of powerlessness which comes to
us in hours like those.

"If God spares Beth, I never will complain again," whispered Meg earnestly.

"If god spares Beth, I'll try to love and serve Him all my life," answered Jo, with equal fervor.

"I wish I had no heart, it aches so," sighed Meg, after a pause.

"If life is often as hard as this, I don't see how we ever shall get through it," added her sister despondently.

Here  the  clock  struck  twelve,  and both forgot themselves in watching Beth, for they fancied a change passed over her wan face. The house was
still  as  death,  and  nothing  but  the wailing of the wind broke the deep hush. Weary Hannah slept on, and no one but the sisters saw the pale
shadow  which  seemed to fall upon the little bed. An hour went by, and nothing happened except Laurie's quiet departure for the station. Another
hour, still no one came, and anxious fears of delay in the storm, or accidents by the way, or, worst of all, a great grief at Washington, haunted
the girls.

It was past two, when Jo, who stood at the window thinking how dreary the world looked in its winding sheet of snow, heard a movement by the bed,
and  turning  quickly,  saw  Meg  kneeling  before  their mother's easy chair with her face hidden. A dreadful fear passed coldly over Jo, as she
thought, "Beth is dead, and Meg is afraid to tell me."

She  was  back at her post in an instant, and to her excited eyes a great change seemed to have taken place. The fever flush and the look of pain
were  gone,  and the beloved little face looked so pale and peaceful in its utter repose that Jo felt no desire to weep or to lament. Leaning low
over this dearest of her sisters, she kissed the damp forehead with her heart on her lips, and softly whispered, "Goodby, my Beth. Goodby!"

As  if  awaked  by the stir, Hannah started out of her sleep, hurried to the bed, looked at Beth, felt her hands, listened at her lips, and then,
throwing  her  apron  over  her head, sat down to rock to and fro, exclaiming, under her breath, "The fever's turned, she's sleepin' nat'ral, her
skin's damp, and she breathes easy. Praise be given! Oh, my goodness me!"

Before the girls could believe the happy truth, the doctor came to confirm it. He was a homely man, but they thought his face quite heavenly when
he  smiled and said, with a fatherly look at them, "Yes, my dears, I think the little girl will pull through this time. Keep the house quiet, let
her sleep, and when she wakes, give her . . ."

What  they  were  to  give,  neither  heard, for both crept into the dark hall, and, sitting on the stairs, held each other close, rejoicing with
hearts  too  full  for words. When they went back to be kissed and cuddled by faithful Hannah, they found Beth lying, as she used to do, with her
cheek pillowed on her hand, the dreadful pallor gone, and breathing quietly, as if just fallen asleep.

"If Mother would only come now!" said Jo, as the winter night began to wane.

"See," said Meg, coming up with a white, half-opened rose, "I thought this would hardly be ready to lay in Beth's hand tomorrow if she--went away
from  us.  But  it has blossomed in the night, and now I mean to put it in my vase here, so that when the darling wakes, the first thing she sees
will be the little rose, and Mother's face."

Never had the sun risen so beautifully, and never had the world seemed so lovely as it did to the heavy eyes of Meg and Jo, as they looked out in
the early morning, when their long, sad vigil was done.

"It looks like a fairy world," said Meg, smiling to herself, as she stood behind the curtain, watching the dazzling sight.

"Hark!" cried Jo, starting to her feet.

Yes,  there  was  a  sound of bells at the door below, a cry from Hannah, and then Laurie's voice saying in a joyful whisper, "Girls, she's come!
She's come!"



CHAPTER NINETEEN

AMY'S WILL

While  these  things  were happening at home, Amy was having hard times at Aunt March's. She felt her exile deeply, and for the first time in her
life, realized how much she was beloved and petted at home. Aunt March never petted any one; she did not approve of it, but she meant to be kind,
for  the  well-behaved  little girl pleased her very much, and Aunt March had a soft place in her old heart for her nephew's children, though she
didn't think it proper to confess it. She really did her best to make Amy happy, but, dear me, what mistakes she made. Some old people keep young
at  heart  in  spite  of wrinkles and gray hairs, can sympathize with children's little cares and joys, make them feel at home, and can hide wise
lessons  under  pleasant  plays,  giving and receiving friendship in the sweetest way. But Aunt March had not this gift, and she worried Amy very
much  with  her  rules  and orders, her prim ways, and long, prosy talks. Finding the child more docile and amiable than her sister, the old lady
felt  it  her  duty  to  try and counteract, as far as possible, the bad effects of home freedom and indulgence. So she took Amy by the hand, and
taught  her as she herself had been taught sixty years ago, a process which carried dismay to Amy's soul, and made her feel like a fly in the web
of a very strict spider.

She  had to wash the cups every morning, and polish up the old-fashioned spoons, the fat silver teapot, and the glasses till they shone. Then she
must  dust  the room, and what a trying job that was. Not a speck escaped Aunt March's eye, and all the furniture had claw legs and much carving,
which  was  never  dusted  to  suit.  Then  Polly had to be fed, the lap dog combed, and a dozen trips upstairs and down to get things or deliver
orders,  for  the  old  lady was very lame and seldom left her big chair. After these tiresome labors, she must do her lessons, which was a daily
trial of every virtue she possessed. Then she was allowed one hour for exercise or play, and didn't she enjoy it?

Laurie  came  every  day, and wheedled Aunt March till Amy was allowed to go out with him, when they walked and rode and had capital times. After
dinner, she had to read aloud, and sit still while the old lady slept, which she usually did for an hour, as she dropped off over the first page.
Then  patchwork  or towels appeared, and Amy sewed with outward meekness and inward rebellion till dusk, when she was allowed to amuse herself as
she  liked  till  teatime.  The  evenings  were  the  worst  of  all,  for Aunt March fell to telling long stories about her youth, which were so
unutterably  dull that Amy was always ready to go to bed, intending to cry over her hard fate, but usually going to sleep before she had squeezed
out more than a tear or two.

If  it had not been for Laurie, and old Esther, the maid, she felt that she never could have got through that dreadful time. The parrot alone was
enough to drive her distracted, for he soon felt that she did not admire him, and revenged himself by being as mischievous as possible. He pulled
her  hair whenever she came near him, upset his bread and milk to plague her when she had newly cleaned his cage, made Mop bark by pecking at him
while  Madam  dozed,  called  her names before company, and behaved in all respects like an reprehensible old bird. Then she could not endure the
dog,  a  fat, cross beast who snarled and yelped at her when she made his toilet, and who lay on his back with all his legs in the air and a most
idiotic  expression  of  countenance  when  he  wanted  something to eat, which was about a dozen times a day. The cook was bad-tempered, the old
coachman was deaf, and Esther the only one who ever took any notice of the young lady.

Esther  was  a  Frenchwoman, who had lived with'Madame', as she called her mistress, for many years, and who rather tyrannized over the old lady,
who  could  not  get along without her. Her real name was Estelle, but Aunt March ordered her to change it, and she obeyed, on condition that she
was  never  asked to change her religion. She took a fancy to Mademoiselle, and amused her very much with odd stories of her life in France, when
Amy  sat  with her while she got up Madame's laces. She also allowed her to roam about the great house, and examine the curious and pretty things
stored away in the big wardrobes and the ancient chests, for Aunt March hoarded like a magpie. Amy's chief delight was an Indian cabinet, full of
queer  drawers, little pigeonholes, and secret places, in which were kept all sorts of ornaments, some precious, some merely curious, all more or
less  antique.  To  examine and arrange these things gave Amy great satisfaction, especially the jewel cases, in which on velvet cushions reposed
the  ornaments which had adorned a belle forty years ago. There was the garnet set which Aunt March wore when she came out, the pearls her father
gave her on her wedding day, her lover's diamonds, the jet mourning rings and pins, the queer lockets, with portraits of dead friends and weeping
willows  made  of  hair  inside, the baby bracelets her one little daughter had worn, Uncle March's big watch, with the red seal so many childish
hands  had  played  with, and in a box all by itself lay Aunt March's wedding ring, too small now for her fat finger, but put carefully away like
the most precious jewel of them all.

"Which would Mademoiselle choose if she had her will?" asked Esther, who always sat near to watch over and lock up the valuables.

"I  like  the  diamonds  best,  but  there  is no necklace among them, and I'm fond of necklaces, they are so becoming. I should choose this if I
might," replied Amy, looking with great admiration at a string of gold and ebony beads from which hung a heavy cross of the same.

"I,  too, covet that, but not as a necklace. Ah, no! To me it is a rosary, and as such I should use it like a good catholic," said Esther, eyeing
the handsome thing wistfully.

"Is it meant to use as you use the string of good-smelling wooden beads hanging over your glass?" asked Amy.

"Truly, yes, to pray with. It would be pleasing to the saints if one used so fine a rosary as this, instead of wearing it as a vain bijou."

"You seem to take a great deal of comfort in your prayers, Esther, and always come down looking quiet and satisfied. I wish I could."

"If  Mademoiselle  was a Catholic, she would find true comfort, but as that is not to be, it would be well if you went apart each day to meditate
and pray, as did the good mistress whom I served before Madame. She had a little chapel, and in it found solacement for much trouble."

"Would  it  be  right  for  me  to do so too?" asked Amy, who in her loneliness felt the need of help of some sort, and found that she was apt to
forget her little book, now that Beth was not there to remind her of it.

"It  would be excellent and charming, and I shall gladly arrange the little dressing room for you if you like it. Say nothing to Madame, but when
she sleeps go you and sit alone a while to think good thoughts, and pray the dear God preserve your sister."

Esther  was  truly pious, and quite sincere in her advice, for she had an affectionate heart, and felt much for the sisters in their anxiety. Amy
liked the idea, and gave her leave to arrange the light closet next her room, hoping it would do her good.

"I  wish  I  knew  where all these pretty things would go when Aunt March dies," she said, as she slowly replaced the shining rosary and shut the
jewel cases one by one.

"To you and your sisters. I know it, Madame confides in me. I witnessed her will, and it is to be so," whispered Esther smiling.


"How nice! But I wish she'd let us have them now. Procrastination is not agreeable," observed Amy, taking a last look at the diamonds.

"It  is  too  soon  yet for the young ladies to wear these things. The first one who is affianced will have the pearls, Madame has said it, and I
have a fancy that the little turquoise ring will be given to you when you go, for Madame approves your good behavior and charming manners."

"Do  you  think so? Oh, I'll be a lamb, if I can only have that lovely ring! It's ever so much prettier than Kitty Bryant's. I do like Aunt March
after all." And Amy tried on the blue ring with a delighted face and a firm resolve to earn it.

From that day she was a model of obedience, and the old lady complacently admired the success of her training. Esther fitted up the closet with a
little table, placed a footstool before it, and over it a picture taken from one of the shut-up rooms. She thought it was of no great value, but,
being  appropriate,  she borrowed it, well knowing that Madame would never know it, nor care if she did. It was, however, a very valuable copy of
one  of  the  famous  pictures  of the world, and Amy's beauty-loving eyes were never tired of looking up at the sweet face of the Divine Mother,
while  her tender thoughts of her own were busy at her heart. On the table she laid her little testament and hymnbook, kept a vase always full of
the  best  flowers Laurie brought her, and came every day to 'sit alone' thinking good thoughts, and praying the dear God to preserve her sister.
Esther  had  given her a rosary of black beads with a silver cross, but Amy hung it up and did not use it, feeling doubtful as to its fitness for
Protestant prayers.

The  little girl was very sincere in all this, for being left alone outside the safe home nest, she felt the need of some kind hand to hold by so
sorely  that she instinctively turned to the strong and tender Friend, whose fatherly love most closely surrounds His little children. She missed
her  mother's  help  to  understand  and  rule  herself,  but  having  been taught where to look, she did her best to find the way and walk in it
confidingly.  But,  Amy  was  a  young  pilgrim, and just now her burden seemed very heavy. She tried to forget herself, to keep cheerful, and be
satisfied  with doing right, though no one saw or praised her for it. In her first effort at being very, very good, she decided to make her will,
as  Aunt  March had done, so that if she did fall ill and die, her possessions might be justly and generously divided. It cost her a pang even to
think of giving up the little treasures which in her eyes were as precious as the old lady's jewels.

During one of her play hours she wrote out the important document as well as she could, with some help from Esther as to certain legal terms, and
when  the  good-natured Frenchwoman had signed her name, Amy felt relieved and laid it by to show Laurie, whom she wanted as a second witness. As
it  was a rainy day, she went upstairs to amuse herself in one of the large chambers, and took Polly with her for company. In this room there was
a  wardrobe full of old-fashioned costumes with which Esther allowed her to play, and it was her favorite amusement to array herself in the faded
brocades,  and parade up and down before the long mirror, making stately curtsies, and sweeping her train about with a rustle which delighted her
ears.  So  busy  was she on this day that she did not hear Laurie's ring nor see his face peeping in at her as she gravely promenaded to and fro,
flirting  her  fan  and tossing her head, on which she wore a great pink turban, contrasting oddly with her blue brocade dress and yellow quilted
petticoat.  She  was  obliged to walk carefully, for she had on highheeled shoes, and, as Laurie told Jo afterward, it was a comical sight to see
her mince along in her gay suit, with Polly sidling and bridling just behind her, imitating her as well as he could, and occasionally stopping to
laugh or exclaim, "Ain't we fine? Get along, you fright! Hold your tongue! Kiss me, dear! Ha! Ha!"

Having with difficulty restrained an explosion of merriment, lest it should offend her majesty, Laurie tapped and was graciously received.

"Sit  down  and  rest  while  I  put these things away, then I want to consult you about a very serious matter," said Amy, when she had shown her
splendor  and  driven  Polly  into  a corner. "That bird is the trial of my life," she continued, removing the pink mountain from her head, while
Laurie seated himself astride a chair.

"Yesterday,  when  Aunt was asleep and I was trying to be as still as a mouse, Polly began to squall and flap about in his cage, so I went to let
him  out,  and  found a big spider there. I poked it out, and it ran under the bookcase. Polly marched straight after it, stooped down and peeped
under  the  bookcase, saying, in his funny way, with a cock of his eye, 'Come out and take a walk, my dear.' I couldn't help laughing, which made
Poll swear, and Aunt woke up and scolded us both."

"Did the spider accept the old fellow's invitation?" asked Laurie, yawning.

"Yes,  out it came, and away ran Polly, frightened to death, and scrambled up on Aunt's chair, calling out, 'Catch her! Catch her! Catch her!' as
I chased the spider."

"That's a lie! Oh, lor!" cried the parrot, pecking at Laurie's toes.

"I'd  wring  your  neck  if you were mine, you old torment," cried Laurie, shaking his fist at the bird, who put his head on one side and gravely
croaked, "Allyluyer! bless your buttons, dear!"

"Now  I'm ready," said Amy, shutting the wardrobe and taking a piece of paper out of her pocket. "I want you to read that, please, and tell me if
it is legal and right. I felt I ought to do it, for life is uncertain and I don't want any ill feeling over my tomb."

Laurie  bit  his  lips,  and  turning  a little from the pensive speaker, read the following document, with praiseworthy gravity, considering the
spelling:

MY LAST WILL AND TESTIMENT

I, Amy Curtis March, being in my sane mind, go give and bequeethe all my earthly property--viz. to wit:--namely

To my father, my best pictures, sketches, maps, and works of art, including frames. Also my $100, to do what he likes with.

To my mother, all my clothes, except the blue apron with pockets--also my likeness, and my medal, with much love.

To  my  dear sister Margaret, I give my turkquoise ring (if I get it), also my green box with the doves on it, also my piece of real lace for her
neck, and my sketch of her as a memorial of her 'little girl'.

To  Jo  I  leave my breastpin, the one mended with sealing wax, also my bronze inkstand--she lost the cover--and my most precious plaster rabbit,
because I am sorry I burned up her story.

To  Beth  (if  she lives after me) I give my dolls and the little bureau, my fan, my linen collars and my new slippers if she can wear them being
thin when she gets well. And I herewith also leave her my regret that I ever made fun of old Joanna.

To my friend and neighbor Theodore Laurence I bequeethe my paper mashay portfolio, my clay model of a horse though he did say it hadn't any neck.
Also in return for his great kindness in the hour of affliction any one of my artistic works he likes, Noter Dame is the best.

To  our  venerable benefactor Mr. Laurence I leave my purple box with a looking glass in the cover which will be nice for his pens and remind him
of the departed girl who thanks him for his favors to her family, especially Beth.

I wish my favorite playmate Kitty Bryant to have the blue silk apron and my gold-bead ring with a kiss.

To Hannah I give the bandbox she wanted and all the patchwork I leave hoping she 'will remember me, when it you see'.

And  now  having  disposed of my most valuable property I hope all will be satisfied and not blame the dead. I forgive everyone, and trust we may
all meet when the trump shall sound. Amen.

To this will and testiment I set my hand and seal on this 20th day of Nov. Anni Domino 1861.

Amy Curtis March

Witnesses:

Estelle Valnor, Theodore Laurence.


The last name was written in pencil, and Amy explained that he was to rewrite it in ink and seal it up for her properly.

"What  put it into your head? Did anyone tell you about Beth's giving away her things?" asked Laurie soberly, as Amy laid a bit of red tape, with
sealing wax, a taper, and a standish before him.

She explained and then asked anxiously, "What about Beth?"

"I'm  sorry  I spoke, but as I did, I'll tell you. She felt so ill one day that she told Jo she wanted to give her piano to Meg, her cats to you,
and  the  poor old doll to Jo, who would love it for her sake. She was sorry she had so little to give, and left locks of hair to the rest of us,
and her best love to Grandpa. She never thought of a will."

Laurie  was  signing and sealing as he spoke, and did not look up till a great tear dropped on the paper. Amy's face was full of trouble, but she
only said, "Don't people put sort of postscripts to their wills, sometimes?"

"Yes, 'codicils', they call them."

"Put  one  in mine then, that I wish all my curls cut off, and given round to my friends. I forgot it, but I want it done though it will spoil my
looks."

Laurie  added  it,  smiling  at Amy's last and greatest sacrifice. Then he amused her for an hour, and was much interested in all her trials. But
when he came to go, Amy held him back to whisper with trembling lips, "Is there really any danger about Beth?"

"I'm  afraid  there  is,  but we must hope for the best, so don't cry, dear." And Laurie put his arm about her with a brotherly gesture which was
very comforting.

When  he had gone, she went to her little chapel, and sitting in the twilight, prayed for Beth, with streaming tears and an aching heart, feeling
that a million turquoise rings would not console her for the loss of her gentle little sister.



CHAPTER TWENTY

CONFIDENTIAL

I  don't  think  I  have  any  words in which to tell the meeting of the mother and daughters. Such hours are beautiful to live, but very hard to
describe,  so I will leave it to the imagination of my readers, merely saying that the house was full of genuine happiness, and that Meg's tender
hope  was  realized, for when Beth woke from that long, healing sleep, the first objects on which her eyes fell were the little rose and Mother's
face.  Too  weak  to  wonder  at  anything,  she  only smiled and nestled close in the loving arms about her, feeling that the hungry longing was
satisfied at last. Then she slept again, and the girls waited upon their mother, for she would not unclasp the thin hand which clung to hers even
in sleep.

Hannah  had  'dished up' an astonishing breakfast for the traveler, finding it impossible to vent her excitement in any other way, and Meg and Jo
fed  their  mother  like  dutiful  young storks, while they listened to her whispered account of Father's state, Mr. Brooke's promise to stay and
nurse  him,  the  delays which the storm occasioned on the homeward journey, and the unspeakable comfort Laurie's hopeful face had given her when
she arrived, worn out with fatigue, anxiety, and cold.

What  a  strange yet pleasant day that was. So brilliant and gay without, for all the world seemed abroad to welcome the first snow. So quiet and
reposeful  within, for everyone slept, spent with watching, and a Sabbath stillness reigned through the house, while nodding Hannah mounted guard
at  the  door.  With a blissful sense of burdens lifted off, Meg and Jo closed their weary eyes, and lay at rest, like storm-beaten boats safe at
anchor in a quiet harbor. Mrs. March would not leave Beth's side, but rested in the big chair, waking often to look at, touch, and brood over her
child, like a miser over some recovered treasure.

Laurie  meanwhile  posted  off to comfort Amy, and told his story so well that Aunt March actually 'sniffed' herself, and never once said "I told
you  so".  Amy  came out so strong on this occasion that I think the good thoughts in the little chapel really began to bear fruit. She dried her
tears  quickly,  restrained  her impatience to see her mother, and never even thought of the turquoise ring, when the old lady heartily agreed in
Laurie's  opinion,  that  she  behaved  'like  a  capital  little woman'. Even Polly seemed impressed, for he called her a good girl, blessed her
buttons, and begged her to "come and take a walk, dear", in his most affable tone. She would very gladly have gone out to enjoy the bright wintry
weather,  but  discovering  that  Laurie was dropping with sleep in spite of manful efforts to conceal the fact, she persuaded him to rest on the
sofa,  while  she  wrote a note to her mother. She was a long time about it, and when she returned, he was stretched out with both arms under his
head, sound asleep, while Aunt March had pulled down the curtains and sat doing nothing in an unusual fit of benignity.

After  a while, they began to think he was not going to wake up till night, and I'm not sure that he would, had he not been effectually roused by
Amy's  cry of joy at sight of her mother. There probably were a good many happy little girls in and about the city that day, but it is my private
opinion  that  Amy  was  the happiest of all, when she sat in her mother's lap and told her trials, receiving consolation and compensation in the
shape  of  approving  smiles  and  fond caresses. They were alone together in the chapel, to which her mother did not object when its purpose was
explained to her.

"On the contrary, I like it very much, dear," looking from the dusty rosary to the well-worn little book, and the lovely picture with its garland
of  evergreen.  "It is an excellent plan to have some place where we can go to be quiet, when things vex or grieve us. There are a good many hard
times in this life of ours, but we can always bear them if we ask help in the right way. I think my little girl is learning this."

"Yes, Mother, and when I go home I mean to have a corner in the big closet to put my books and the copy of that picture which I've tried to make.
The  woman's  face is not good, it's too beautiful for me to draw, but the baby is done better, and I love it very much. I like to think He was a
little child once, for then I don't seem so far away, and that helps me."

As  Amy  pointed  to  the  smiling  Christ  child on his Mother's knee, Mrs. March saw something on the lifted hand that made her smile. She said
nothing,  but Amy understood the look, and after a minute's pause, she added gravely, "I wanted to speak to you about this, but I forgot it. Aunt
gave  me  the  ring today. She called me to her and kissed me, and put it on my finger, and said I was a credit to her, and she'd like to keep me
always. She gave that funny guard to keep the turquoise on, as it's too big. I'd like to wear them Mother, can I?"

"They  are very pretty, but I think you're rather too young for such ornaments, Amy," said Mrs. March, looking at the plump little hand, with the
band of sky-blue stones on the forefinger, and the quaint guard formed of two tiny golden hands clasped together.

"I'll  try  not  to be vain," said Amy. "I don't think I like it only because it's so pretty, but I want to wear it as the girl in the story wore
her bracelet, to remind me of something."

"Do you mean Aunt March?" asked her mother, laughing.

"No,  to  remind me not to be selfish." Amy looked so earnest and sincere about it that her mother stopped laughing, and listened respectfully to
the little plan.

"I've  thought  a  great deal lately about my 'bundle of naughties', and being selfish is the largest one in it, so I'm going to try hard to cure
it,  if  I can. Beth isn't selfish, and that's the reason everyone loves her and feels so bad at the thoughts of losing her. People wouldn't feel
so bad about me if I was sick, and I don't deserve to have them, but I'd like to be loved and missed by a great many friends, so I'm going to try
and  be  like  Beth all I can. I'm apt to forget my resolutions, but if I had something always about me to remind me, I guess I should do better.
May we try this way?"

"Yes,  but  I  have more faith in the corner of the big closet. Wear your ring, dear, and do your best. I think you will prosper, for the sincere
wish to be good is half the battle. Now I must go back to Beth. Keep up your heart, little daughter, and we will soon have you home again."

That  evening  while  Meg  was writing to her father to report the traveler's safe arrival, Jo slipped upstairs into Beth's room, and finding her
mother in her usual place, stood a minute twisting her fingers in her hair, with a worried gesture and an undecided look.

"What is it, deary?" asked Mrs. March, holding out her hand, with a face which invited confidence.

"I want to tell you something, Mother."

"About Meg?"

"How quickly you guessed! Yes, it's about her, and though it's a little thing, it fidgets me."

"Beth is asleep. Speak low, and tell me all about it. That Moffat hasn't been here, I hope?" asked Mrs. March rather sharply.

"No.  I  should  have  shut the door in his face if he had," said Jo, settling herself on the floor at her mother's feet. "Last summer Meg left a
pair  of  gloves over at the Laurences' and only one was returned. We forgot about it, till Teddy told me that Mr. Brooke owned that he liked Meg
but didn't dare say so, she was so young and he so poor. Now, isn't it a dreadful state of things?"

"Do you think Meg cares for him?" asked Mrs. March, with an anxious look.

"Mercy  me!  I  don't know anything about love and such nonsense!" cried Jo, with a funny mixture of interest and contempt. "In novels, the girls
show  it  by  starting  and  blushing, fainting away, growing thin, and acting like fools. Now Meg does not do anything of the sort. She eats and
drinks  and  sleeps  like a sensible creature, she looks straight in my face when I talk about that man, and only blushes a little bit when Teddy
jokes about lovers. I forbid him to do it, but he doesn't mind me as he ought."

"Then you fancy that Meg is not interested in John?"

"Who?" cried Jo, staring.

"Mr. Brooke. I call him 'John' now. We fell into the way of doing so at the hospital, and he likes it."

"Oh,  dear!  I  know  you'll  take  his part. He's been good to Father, and you won't send him away, but let Meg marry him, if she wants to. Mean
thing! To go petting Papa and helping you, just to wheedle you into liking him." And Jo pulled her hair again with a wrathful tweak.

"My  dear, don't get angry about it, and I will tell you how it happened. John went with me at Mr. Laurence's request, and was so devoted to poor
Father  that  we  couldn't help getting fond of him. He was perfectly open and honorable about Meg, for he told us he loved her, but would earn a
comfortable  home  before he asked her to marry him. He only wanted our leave to love her and work for her, and the right to make her love him if
he  could.  He  is  a  truly  excellent  young man, and we could not refuse to listen to him, but I will not consent to Meg's engaging herself so
young."

"Of  course not. It would be idiotic! I knew there was mischief brewing. I felt it, and now it's worse than I imagined. I just wish I could marry
Meg myself, and keep her safe in the family."

This  odd arrangement made Mrs. March smile, but she said gravely, "Jo, I confide in you and don't wish you to say anything to Meg yet. When John
comes back, and I see them together, I can judge better of her feelings toward him."

"She'll  see those handsome eyes that she talks about, and then it will be all up with her. She's got such a soft heart, it will melt like butter
in the sun if anyone looks sentimentlly at her. She read the short reports he sent more than she did your letters, and pinched me when I spoke of
it,  and  likes  brown  eyes,  and doesn't think John an ugly name, and she'll go and fall in love, and there's an end of peace and fun, and cozy
times  together. I see it all! They'll go lovering around the house, and we shall have to dodge. Meg will be absorbed and no good to me any more.
Brooke  will  scratch  up  a  fortune  somehow,  carry her off, and make a hole in the family, and I shall break my heart, and everything will be
abominably uncomfortable. Oh, dear me! Why weren't we all boys, then there wouldn't be any bother."

Jo leaned her chin on her knees in a disconsolate attitude and shook her fist at the reprehensible John. Mrs. March sighed, and Jo looked up with
an air of relief.

"You  don't  like  it,  Mother? I'm glad of it. Let's send him about his business, and not tell Meg a word of it, but all be happy together as we
always have been."

"I  did  wrong  to  sigh, Jo. It is natural and right you should all go to homes of your own in time, but I do want to keep my girls as long as I
can,  and  I  am  sorry that this happened so soon, for Meg is only seventeen and it will be some years before John can make a home for her. Your
father  and  I  have agreed that she shall not bind herself in any way, nor be married, before twenty. If she and John love one another, they can
wait,  and  test  the  love by doing so. She is conscientious, and I have no fear of her treating him unkindly. My pretty, tender hearted girl! I
hope things will go happily with her."

"Hadn't you rather have her marry a rich man?" asked Jo, as her mother's voice faltered a little over the last words.

"Money is a good and useful thing, Jo, and I hope my girls will never feel the need of it too bitterly, nor be tempted by too much. I should like
to  know  that  John  was  firmly  established  in  some good business, which gave him an income large enough to keep free from debt and make Meg
comfortable. I'm not ambitious for a splendid fortune, a fashionable position, or a great name for my girls. If rank and money come with love and
virtue, also, I should accept them gratefully, and enjoy your good fortune, but I know, by experience, how much genuine happiness can be had in a
plain  little  house,  where  the  daily  bread is earned, and some privations give sweetness to the few pleasures. I am content to see Meg begin
humbly, for if I am not mistaken, she will be rich in the possession of a good man's heart, and that is better than a fortune."

"I  understand,  Mother, and quite agree, but I'm disappointed about Meg, for I'd planned to have her marry Teddy by-and-by and sit in the lap of
luxury all her days. Wouldn't it be nice?" asked Jo, looking up with a brighter face.

"He is younger than she, you know," began Mrs. March, but Jo broke in . . .

"Only  a  little, he's old for his age, and tall, and can be quite grown-up in his manners if he likes. Then he's rich and generous and good, and
loves us all, and I say it's a pity my plan is spoiled."

"I'm  afraid  Laurie  is  hardly  grown-up  enough for Meg, and altogether too much of a weathercock just now for anyone to depend on. Don't make
plans, Jo, but let time and their own hearts mate your friends. We can't meddle safely in such matters, and had better not get 'romantic rubbish'
as you call it, into our heads, lest it spoil our friendship."

"Well,  I won't, but I hate to see things going all crisscross and getting snarled up, when a pull here and a snip there would straighten it out.
I wish wearing flatirons on our heads would keep us from growing up. But buds will be roses, and kittens cats, more's the pity!"

"What's that about flatirons and cats?" asked Meg, as she crept into the room with the finished letter in her hand.

"Only one of my stupid speeches. I'm going to bed. Come, Peggy," said Jo, unfolding herself like an animated puzzle.

"Quite right, and beautifully written. Please add that I send my love to John," said Mrs. March, as she glanced over the letter and gave it back.

"Do you call him 'John'?" asked Meg, smiling, with her innocent eyes looking down into her mother's.

"Yes, he has been like a son to us, and we are very fond of him," replied Mrs. March, returning the look with a keen one.

"I'm glad of that, he is so lonely. Good night, Mother, dear. It is so inexpressibly comfortable to have you here," was Meg's answer.

The  kiss  her mother gave her was a very tender one, and as she went away, Mrs. March said, with a mixture of satisfaction and regret, "She does
not love John yet, but will soon learn to."



CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE

LAURIE MAKES MISCHIEF, AND JO MAKES PEACE

Jo's  face was a study next day, for the secret rather weighed upon her, and she found it hard not to look mysterious and important. Meg observed
it,  but  did not trouble herself to make inquiries, for she had learned that the best way to manage Jo was by the law of contraries, so she felt
sure  of  being  told  everything  if  she did not ask. She was rather surprised, therefore, when the silence remained unbroken, and Jo assumed a
patronizing  air, which decidedly aggravated Meg, who in turn assumed an air of dignified reserve and devoted herself to her mother. This left Jo
to  her  own devices, for Mrs. March had taken her place as nurse, and bade her rest, exercise, and amuse herself after her long confinement. Amy
being  gone, Laurie was her only refuge, and much as she enjoyed his society, she rather dreaded him just then, for he was an incorrigible tease,
and she feared he would coax the secret from her.

She  was  quite  right, for the mischief-loving lad no sooner suspected a mystery than he set himself to find it out, and led Jo a trying life of
it.  He wheedled, bribed, ridiculed, threatened, and scolded; affected indifference, that he might surprise the truth from her; declared he knew,
then that he didn't care; and at last, by dint of perseverance, he satisfied himself that it concerned Meg and Mr. Brooke. Feeling indignant that
he was not taken into his tutor's confidence, he set his wits to work to devise some proper retaliation for the slight.

Meg  meanwhile  had apparently forgotten the matter and was absorbed in preparations for her father's return, but all of a sudden a change seemed
to  come  over  her, and, for a day or two, she was quite unlike herself. She started when spoken to, blushed when looked at, was very quiet, and
sat  over  her  sewing,  with  a  timid,  troubled look on her face. To her mother's inquiries she answered that she was quite well, and Jo's she
silenced by begging to be let alone.

"She  feels  it  in  the  air--love,  I mean--and she's going very fast. She's got most of the symptoms--is twittery and cross, doesn't eat, lies
awake,  and mopes in corners. I caught her singing that song he gave her, and once she said 'John', as you do, and then turned as red as a poppy.
Whatever shall we do?" said Jo, looking ready for any measures, however violent.

"Nothing but wait. Let her alone, be kind and patient, and Father's coming will settle everything," replied her mother.

"Here's a note to you, Meg, all sealed up. How odd! Teddy never seals mine," said Jo next day, as she distributed the contents of the little post
office.

Mrs. March and Jo were deep in their own affairs, when a sound from Meg made them look up to see her staring at her note with a frightened face.

"My child, what is it?" cried her mother, running to her, while Jo tried to take the paper which had done the mischief.

"It's  all  a  mistake,  he  didn't  send  it. Oh, Jo, how could you do it?" and Meg hid her face in her hands, crying as if her heart were quite
broken.

"Me! I've done nothing! What's she talking about?" cried Jo, bewildered.

Meg's  mild  eyes  kindled  with anger as she pulled a crumpled note from her pocket and threw it at Jo, saying reproachfully, "You wrote it, and
that bad boy helped you. How could you be so rude, so mean, and cruel to us both?"

Jo hardly heard her, for she and her mother were reading the note, which was written in a peculiar hand.


"My Dearest Margaret,

"I  can no longer restrain my passion, and must know my fate before I return. I dare not tell your parents yet, but I think they would consent if
they  knew  that  we adored one another. Mr. Laurence will help me to some good place, and then, my sweet girl, you will make me happy. I implore
you to say nothing to your family yet, but to send one word of hope through Laurie to,

"Your devoted John."


"Oh,  the  little villain! That's the way he meant to pay me for keeping my word to Mother. I'll give him a hearty scolding and bring him over to
beg pardon," cried Jo, burning to execute immediate justice. But her mother held her back, saying, with a look she seldom wore . . .

"Stop, Jo, you must clear yourself first. You have played so many pranks that I am afraid you have had a hand in this."

"On  my  word,  Mother, I haven't! I never saw that note before, and don't know anything about it, as true as I live!" said Jo, so earnestly that
they  believed  her.  "If  I  had taken part in it I'd have done it better than this, and have written a sensible note. I should think you'd have
known Mr. Brooke wouldn't write such stuff as that," she added, scornfully tossing down the paper.

"It's like his writing," faltered Meg, comparing it with the note in her hand.

"Oh, Meg, you didn't answer it?" cried Mrs. March quickly.

"Yes, I did!" and Meg hid her face again, overcome with shame.

"Here's a scrape! Do let me bring that wicked boy over to explain and be lectured. I can't rest till I get hold of him." And Jo made for the door
again.

"Hush!  Let  me  handle  this, for it is worse than I thought. Margaret, tell me the whole story," commanded Mrs. March, sitting down by Meg, yet
keeping hold of Jo, lest she should fly off.

"I  received  the  first  letter  from Laurie, who didn't look as if he knew anything about it," began Meg, without looking up. "I was worried at
first  and  meant  to  tell  you, then I remembered how you liked Mr. Brooke, so I thought you wouldn't mind if I kept my little secret for a few
days.  I'm so silly that I liked to think no one knew, and while I was deciding what to say, I felt like the girls in books, who have such things
to do. Forgive me, Mother, I'm paid for my silliness now. I never can look him in the face again."

"What did you say to him?" asked Mrs. March.

"I  only  said  I was too young to do anything about it yet, that I didn't wish to have secrets from you, and he must speak to father. I was very
grateful for his kindness, and would be his friend, but nothing more, for a long while."

Mrs.  March  smiled,  as  if well pleased, and Jo clapped her hands, exclaiming, with a laugh, "You are almost equal to Caroline Percy, who was a
pattern of prudence! Tell on, Meg. What did he say to that?"

"He  writes  in  a  different  way  entirely, telling me that he never sent any love letter at all, and is very sorry that my roguish sister, Jo,
should take liberties with our names. It's very kind and respectful, but think how dreadful for me!"

Meg  leaned  against  her mother, looking the image of despair, and Jo tramped about the room, calling Laurie names. All of a sudden she stopped,
caught up the two notes, and after looking at them closely, said decidedly, "I don't believe Brooke ever saw either of these letters. Teddy wrote
both, and keeps yours to crow over me with because I wouldn't tell him my secret."

"Don't have any secrets, Jo. Tell it to Mother and keep out of trouble, as I should have done," said Meg warningly.

"Bless you, child! Mother told me."

"That will do, Jo. I'll comfort Meg while you go and get Laurie. I shall sift the matter to the bottom, and put a stop to such pranks at once."

Away ran Jo, and Mrs. March gently told Meg Mr. Brooke's real feelings. "Now, dear, what are your own? Do you love him enough to wait till he can
make a home for you, or will you keep yourself quite free for the present?"

"I've  been so scared and worried, I don't want to have anything to do with lovers for a long while, perhaps never," answered Meg petulantly. "If
John  doesn't  know  anything about this nonsense, don't tell him, and make Jo and Laurie hold their tongues. I won't be deceived and plagued and
made a fool of. It's a shame!"

Seeing  Meg's  usually gentle temper was roused and her pride hurt by this mischievous joke, Mrs. March soothed her by promises of entire silence
and  great  discretion  for  the  future.  The  instant Laurie's step was heard in the hall, Meg fled into the study, and Mrs. March received the
culprit  alone.  Jo  had  not  told  him  why he was wanted, fearing he wouldn't come, but he knew the minute he saw Mrs. March's face, and stood
twirling his hat with a guilty air which convicted him at once. Jo was dismissed, but chose to march up and down the hall like a sentinel, having
some fear that the prisoner might bolt. The sound of voices in the parlor rose and fell for half an hour, but what happened during that interview
the girls never knew.

When  they  were  called  in, Laurie was standing by their mother with such a penitent face that Jo forgave him on the spot, but did not think it
wise to betray the fact. Meg received his humble apology, and was much comforted by the assurance that Brooke knew nothing of the joke.

"I'll  never tell him to my dying day, wild horses shan't drag it out of me, so you'll forgive me, Meg, and I'll do anything to show how out-and-
out sorry I am," he added, looking very much ashamed of himself.

"I'll  try,  but  it was a very ungentlemanly thing to do, I didn't think you could be so sly and malicious, Laurie," replied Meg, trying to hide
her maidenly confusion under a gravely reproachful air.

"It  was  altogether  abominable,  and I don't deserve to be spoken to for a month, but you will, though, won't you?" And Laurie folded his hands
together  with  such and imploring gesture, as he spoke in his irresistibly persuasive tone, that it was impossible to frown upon him in spite of
his scandalous behavior.

Meg  pardoned him, and Mrs. March's grave face relaxed, in spite of her efforts to keep sober, when she heard him declare that he would atone for
his sins by all sorts of penances, and abase himself like a worm before the injured damsel.

Jo  stood  aloof,  meanwhile,  trying  to  harden her heart against him, and succeeding only in primming up her face into an expression of entire
disapprobation.  Laurie looked at her once or twice, but as she showed no sign of relenting, he felt injured, and turned his back on her till the
others were done with him, when he made her a low bow and walked off without a word.

As  soon as he had gone, she wished she had been more forgiving, and when Meg and her mother went upstairs, she felt lonely and longed for Teddy.
After resisting for some time, she yielded to the impulse, and armed with a book to return, went over to the big house.

"Is Mr. Laurence in?" asked Jo, of a housemaid, who was coming downstairs.

"Yes, Miss, but I don't believe he's seeable just yet."

"Why not? Is he ill?"

"La, no Miss, but he's had a scene with Mr. Laurie, who is in one of his tantrums about something, which vexes the old gentleman, so I dursn't go
nigh him."

"Where is Laurie?"

"Shut  up  in his room, and he won't answer, though I've been a-tapping. I don't know what's to become of the dinner, for it's ready, and there's
no one to eat it."

"I'll go and see what the matter is. I'm not afraid of either of them."

Up went Jo, and knocked smartly on the door of Laurie's little study.

"Stop that, or I'll open the door and make you!" called out the young gentleman in a threatening tone.

Jo immediately knocked again. The door flew open, and in she bounced before Laurie could recover from his surprise. Seeing that he really was out
of  temper,  Jo,  who  knew  how  to  manage him, assumed a contrite expression, and going artistically down upon her knees, said meekly, "Please
forgive me for being so cross. I came to make it up, and can't go away till I have."

"It's all right. Get up, and don't be a goose, Jo," was the cavalier reply to her petition.

"Thank you, I will. Could I ask what's the matter? You don't look exactly easy in your mind."

"I've been shaken, and I won't bear it!" growled Laurie indignantly.

"Who did it?" demanded Jo.

"Grandfather. If it had been anyone else I'd have . . ." And the injured youth finished his sentence by an energetic gesture of the right arm.

"That's nothing. I often shake you, and you don't mind," said Jo soothingly.

"Pooh! You're a girl, and it's fun, but I'll allow no man to shake me!"

"I don't think anyone would care to try it, if you looked as much like a thundercloud as you do now. Why were you treated so?"

"Just because I wouldn't say what your mother wanted me for. I'd promised not to tell, and of course I wasn't going to break my word."

"Couldn't you satisfy your grandpa in any other way?"

"No,  he  would  have the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth. I'd have told my part of the scrape, if I could without bringing Meg
in. As I couldn't, I held my tongue, and bore the scolding till the old gentleman collared me. Then I bolted, for fear I should forget myself."

"It wasn't nice, but he's sorry, I know, so go down and make up. I'll help you."

"Hanged  if  I  do!  I'm not going to be lectured and pummelled by everyone, just for a bit of a frolic. I was sorry about Meg, and begged pardon
like a man, but I won't do it again, when I wasn't in the wrong."

"He didn't know that."

"He  ought  to  trust me, and not act as if I was a baby. It's no use, Jo, he's got to learn that I'm able to take care of myself, and don't need
anyone's apron string to hold on by."

"What pepper pots you are!" sighed Jo. "How do you mean to settle this affair?"

"Well, he ought to beg pardon, and believe me when I say I can't tell him what the fuss's about."

"Bless you! He won't do that."

"I won't go down till he does."

"Now, Teddy, be sensible. Let it pass, and I'll explain what I can. You can't stay here, so what's the use of being melodramatic?"

"I don't intend to stay here long, anyway. I'll slip off and take a journey somewhere, and when Grandpa misses me he'll come round fast enough."

"I dare say, but you ought not to go and worry him."

"Don't preach. I'll go to Washington and see Brooke. It's gay there, and I'll enjoy myself after the troubles."

"What fun you'd have! I wish I could run off too," said Jo, forgetting her part of mentor in lively visions of martial life at the capital.

"Come  on, then! Why not? You go and surprise your father, and I'll stir up old Brooke. It would be a glorious joke. Let's do it, Jo. We'll leave
a letter saying we are all right, and trot off at once. I've got money enough. It will do you good, and no harm, as you go to your father."

For  a  moment  Jo  looked as if she would agree, for wild as the plan was, it just suited her. She was tired of care and confinement, longed for
change,  and  thoughts  of  her father blended temptingly with the novel charms of camps and hospitals, liberty and fun. Her eyes kindled as they
turned wistfully toward the window, but they fell on the old house opposite, and she shook her head with sorrowful decision.

"If I was a boy, we'd run away together, and have a capital time, but as I'm a miserable girl, I must be proper and stop at home. Don't tempt me,
Teddy, it's a crazy plan."

"That's the fun of it," began Laurie, who had got a willful fit on him and was possessed to break out of bounds in some way.

"Hold  your  tongue!"  cried  Jo,  covering  her  ears. "'Prunes and prisms' are my doom, and I may as well make up my mind to it. I came here to
moralize, not to hear things that make me skip to think of."

"I know Meg would wet-blanket such a proposal, but I thought you had more spirit," began Laurie insinuatingly.

"Bad boy, be quiet! Sit down and think of your own sins, don't go making me add to mine. If I get your grandpa to apologize for the shaking, will
you give up running away?" asked Jo seriously.

"Yes, but you won't do it," answered Laurie, who wished to make up, but felt that his outraged dignity must be appeased first.

"If  I  can  manage  the  young  one,  I can the old one," muttered Jo, as she walked away, leaving Laurie bent over a railroad map with his head
propped up on both hands.

"Come in!" and Mr. Laurence's gruff voice sounded gruffer than ever, as Jo tapped at his door.

"It's only me, Sir, come to return a book," she said blandly, as she entered.

"Want any more?" asked the old gentleman, looking grim and vexed, but trying not to show it.

"Yes,  please.  I  like old Sam so well, I think I'll try the second volume," returned Jo, hoping to propitiate him by accepting a second dose of
Boswell's Johnson, as he had recommended that lively work.

The  shaggy  eyebrows  unbent  a  little  as  he rolled the steps toward the shelf where the Johnsonian literature was placed. Jo skipped up, and
sitting on the top step, affected to be searching for her book, but was really wondering how best to introduce the dangerous object of her visit.
Mr.  Laurence  seemed  to  suspect that something was brewing in her mind, for after taking several brisk turns about the room, he faced round on
her, speaking so abruptly that Rasselas tumbled face downward on the floor.

"What  has that boy been about? Don't try to shield him. I know he has been in mischief by the way he acted when he came home. I can't get a word
from him, and when I threatened to shake the truth out of him he bolted upstairs and locked himself into his room."

"He did wrong, but we forgave him, and all promised not to say a word to anyone," began Jo reluctantly.

"That  won't  do.  He  shall  not shelter himself behind a promise from you softhearted girls. If he's done anything amiss, he shall confess, beg
pardon, and be punished. Out with it, Jo. I won't be kept in the dark."

Mr.  Laurence  looked  so alarming and spoke so sharply that Jo would have gladly run away, if she could, but she was perched aloft on the steps,
and he stood at the foot, a lion in the path, so she had to stay and brave it out.

"Indeed,  Sir,  I  cannot  tell.  Mother forbade it. Laurie has confessed, asked pardon, and been punished quite enough. We don't keep silence to
shield  him,  but  someone else, and it will make more trouble if you interfere. Please don't. It was partly my fault, but it's all right now. So
let's forget it, and talk about the _Rambler_ or something pleasant."

"Hang  the  _Rambler!_  Come  down and give me your word that this harum-scarum boy of mine hasn't done anything ungrateful or impertinent. If he
has, after all your kindness to him, I'll thrash him with my own hands."

The threat sounded awful, but did not alarm Jo, for she knew the irascible old gentleman would never lift a finger against his grandson, whatever
he  might  say  to  the  contrary.  She obediently descended, and made as light of the prank as she could without betraying Meg or forgetting the
truth.

"Hum  .  .  . ha . . . well, if the boy held his tongue because he promised, and not from obstinacy, I'll forgive him. He's a stubborn fellow and
hard  to  manage,"  said  Mr. Laurence, rubbing up his hair till it looked as if he had been out in a gale, and smoothing the frown from his brow
with an air of relief.

"So  am I, but a kind word will govern me when all the king's horses and all the king's men couldn't," said Jo, trying to say a kind word for her
friend, who seemed to get out of one scrape only to fall into another.

"You think I'm not kind to him, hey?" was the sharp answer.

"Oh, dear no, Sir. You are rather too kind sometimes, and then just a trifle hasty when he tries your patience. Don't you think you are?"

Jo  was  determined to have it out now, and tried to look quite placid, though she quaked a little after her bold speech. To her great relief and
surprise,  the  old gentleman only threw his spectacles onto the table with a rattle and exclaimed frankly, "You're right, girl, I am! I love the
boy, but he tries my patience past bearing, and I know how it will end, if we go on so."

"I'll  tell  you,  he'll  run  away."  Jo was sorry for that speech the minute it was made. She meant to warn him that Laurie would not bear much
restraint, and hoped he would be more forebearing with the lad.

Mr.  Laurence's ruddy face changed suddenly, and he sat down, with a troubled glance at the picture of a handsome man, which hung over his table.
It  was  Laurie's father, who had run away in his youth, and married against the imperious old man's will. Jo fancied he remembered and regretted
the past, and she wished she had held her tongue.

"He  won't do it unless he is very much worried, and only threatens it sometimes, when he gets tired of studying. I often think I should like to,
especially since my hair was cut, so if you ever miss us, you may advertise for two boys and look among the ships bound for India."

She laughed as she spoke, and Mr. Laurence looked relieved, evidently taking the whole as a joke.

"You hussy, how dare you talk in that way? Where's your respect for me, and your proper bringing up? Bless the boys and girls! What torments they
are,  yet  we  can't  do without them," he said, pinching her cheeks good-humoredly. "Go and bring that boy down to his dinner, tell him it's all
right, and advise him not to put on tragedy airs with his grandfather. I won't bear it."

"He  won't  come,  Sir.  He  feels badly because you didn't believe him when he said he couldn't tell. I think the shaking hurt his feelings very
much."

Jo tried to look pathetic but must have failed, for Mr. Laurence began to laugh, and she knew the day was won.

"I'm sorry for that, and ought to thank him for not shaking me, I suppose. What the dickens does the fellow expect?" and the old gentleman looked
a trifle ashamed of his own testiness.

"If  I  were you, I'd write him an apology, Sir. He says he won't come down till he has one, and talks about Washington, and goes on in an absurd
way.  A  formal  apology will make him see how foolish he is, and bring him down quite amiable. Try it. He likes fun, and this way is better than
talking. I'll carry it up, and teach him his duty."

Mr. Laurence gave her a sharp look, and put on his spectacles, saying slowly, "You're a sly puss, but I don't mind being managed by you and Beth.
Here, give me a bit of paper, and let us have done with this nonsense."

The  note  was written in the terms which one gentleman would use to another after offering some deep insult. Jo dropped a kiss on the top of Mr.
Laurence's  bald head, and ran up to slip the apology under Laurie's door, advising him through the keyhole to be submissive, decorous, and a few
other  agreeable  impossibilities.  Finding  the  door locked again, she left the note to do its work, and was going quietly away, when the young
gentleman  slid  down  the  banisters,  and  waited for her at the bottom, saying, with his most virtuous expression of countenance, "What a good
fellow you are, Jo! Did you get blown up?" he added, laughing.

"No, he was pretty mild, on the whole."

"Ah! I got it all round. Even you cast me off over there, and I felt just ready to go to the deuce," he began apologetically.

"Don't talk that way, turn over a new leaf and begin again, Teddy, my son."

"I  keep  turning over new leaves, and spoiling them, as I used to spoil my copybooks, and I make so many beginnings there never will be an end,"
he said dolefully.

"Go and eat your dinner, you'll feel better after it. Men always croak when they are hungry," and Jo whisked out at the front door after that.

"That's  a 'label' on my 'sect'," answered Laurie, quoting Amy, as he went to partake of humble pie dutifully with his grandfather, who was quite
saintly in temper and overwhelmingly respectful in manner all the rest of the day.

Everyone  thought  the  matter ended and the little cloud blown over, but the mischief was done, for though others forgot it, Meg remembered. She
never  alluded  to  a certain person, but she thought of him a good deal, dreamed dreams more than ever, and once Jo, rummaging her sister's desk
for  stamps,  found  a  bit of paper scribbled over with the words, 'Mrs. John Brooke', whereat she groaned tragically and cast it into the fire,
feeling that Laurie's prank had hastened the evil day for her.



CHAPTER TWENTY-TWO

PLEASANT MEADOWS

Like sunshine after a storm were the peaceful weeks which followed. The invalids improved rapidly, and Mr. March began to talk of returning early
in  the  new  year.  Beth  was  soon able to lie on the study sofa all day, amusing herself with the well-beloved cats at first, and in time with
doll's  sewing,  which had fallen sadly behind-hand. Her once active limbs were so stiff and feeble that Jo took her for a daily airing about the
house in her strong arms. Meg cheerfully blackened and burned her white hands cooking delicate messes for 'the dear', while Amy, a loyal slave of
the ring, celebrated her return by giving away as many of her treasures as she could prevail on her sisters to accept.

As  Christmas approached, the usual mysteries began to haunt the house, and Jo frequently convulsed the family by proposing utterly impossible or
magnificently  absurd  ceremonies,  in  honor  of  this unusually merry Christmas. Laurie was equally impracticable, and would have had bonfires,
skyrockets,  and triumphal arches, if he had had his own way. After many skirmishes and snubbings, the ambitious pair were considered effectually
quenched and went about with forlorn faces, which were rather belied by explosions of laughter when the two got together.

Several days of unusually mild weather fitly ushered in a splendid Christmas Day. Hannah 'felt in her bones' that it was going to be an unusually
fine  day,  and  she  proved  herself a true prophetess, for everybody and everything seemed bound to produce a grand success. To begin with, Mr.
March  wrote  that  he  should  soon  be  with them, then Beth felt uncommonly well that morning, and, being dressed in her mother's gift, a soft
crimson merino wrapper, was borne in high triumph to the window to behold the offering of Jo and Laurie. The Unquenchables had done their best to
be worthy of the name, for like elves they had worked by night and conjured up a comical surprise. Out in the garden stood a stately snow maiden,
crowned  with  holly, bearing a basket of fruit and flowers in one hand, a great roll of music in the other, a perfect rainbow of an Afghan round
her chilly shoulders, and a Christmas carol issuing from her lips on a pink paper streamer.

THE JUNGFRAU TO BETH

God bless you, dear Queen Bess! May nothing you dismay, But health and peace and happiness Be yours, this Christmas day.

Here's fruit to feed our busy bee, And flowers for her nose. Here's music for her pianee, An afghan for her toes,

A portrait of Joanna, see, By Raphael No. 2, Who laboured with great industry To make it fair and true.

Accept a ribbon red, I beg, For Madam Purrer's tail, And ice cream made by lovely Peg, A Mont Blanc in a pail.

Their dearest love my makers laid Within my breast of snow. Accept it, and the Alpine maid, From Laurie and from Jo.

How Beth laughed when she saw it, how Laurie ran up and down to bring in the gifts, and what ridiculous speeches Jo made as she presented them.

"I'm  so full of happiness, that if Father was only here, I couldn't hold one drop more," said Beth, quite sighing with contentment as Jo carried
her off to the study to rest after the excitement, and to refresh herself with some of the delicious grapes the 'Jungfrau' had sent her.

"So am I," added Jo, slapping the pocket wherein reposed the long-desired _Undine and Sintram_.

"I'm sure I am," echoed Amy, poring over the engraved copy of the Madonna and Child, which her mother had given her in a pretty frame.

"Of  course  I  am!"  cried  Meg,  smoothing the silvery folds of her first silk dress, for Mr. Laurence had insisted on giving it. "How can I be
otherwise?" said Mrs. March gratefully, as her eyes went from her husband's letter to Beth's smiling face, and her hand carressed the brooch made
of gray and golden, chestnut and dark brown hair, which the girls had just fastened on her breast.

Now and then, in this workaday world, things do happen in the delightful storybook fashion, and what a comfort it is. Half an hour after everyone
had said they were so happy they could only hold one drop more, the drop came. Laurie opened the parlor door and popped his head in very quietly.
He  might  just as well have turned a somersault and uttered an Indian war whoop, for his face was so full of suppressed excitement and his voice
so  treacherously  joyful  that  everyone jumped up, though he only said, in a queer, breathless voice, "Here's another Christmas present for the
March family."

Before  the  words were well out of his mouth, he was whisked away somehow, and in his place appeared a tall man, muffled up to the eyes, leaning
on  the  arm  of  another  tall  man,  who  tried  to say something and couldn't. Of course there was a general stampede, and for several minutes
everybody seemed to lose their wits, for the strangest things were done, and no one said a word.

Mr.  March  became invisible in the embrace of four pairs of loving arms. Jo disgraced herself by nearly fainting away, and had to be doctored by
Laurie  in  the  china  closet. Mr. Brooke kissed Meg entirely by mistake, as he somewhat incoherently explained. And Amy, the dignified, tumbled
over  a  stool,  and  never stopping to get up, hugged and cried over her father's boots in the most touching manner. Mrs. March was the first to
recover herself, and held up her hand with a warning, "Hush! Remember Beth."

But it was too late. The study door flew open, the little red wrapper appeared on the threshold, joy put strength into the feeble limbs, and Beth
ran straight into her father's arms. Never mind what happened just after that, for the full hearts overflowed, washing away the bitterness of the
past and leaving only the sweetness of the present.

It  was  not  at  all  romantic, but a hearty laugh set everybody straight again, for Hannah was discovered behind the door, sobbing over the fat
turkey,  which she had forgotten to put down when she rushed up from the kitchen. As the laugh subsided, Mrs. March began to thank Mr. Brooke for
his  faithful  care  of  her  husband,  at  which Mr. Brooke suddenly remembered that Mr. March needed rest, and seizing Laurie, he precipitately
retired. Then the two invalids were ordered to repose, which they did, by both sitting in one big chair and talking hard.

Mr.  March  told  how he had longed to surprise them, and how, when the fine weather came, he had been allowed by his doctor to take advantage of
it,  how devoted Brooke had been, and how he was altogether a most estimable and upright young man. Why Mr. March paused a minute just there, and
after a glance at Meg, who was violently poking the fire, looked at his wife with an inquiring lift of the eyebrows, I leave you to imagine. Also
why  Mrs.  March gently nodded her head and asked, rather abruptly, if he wouldn't like to have something to eat. Jo saw and understood the look,
and she stalked grimly away to get wine and beef tea, muttering to herself as she slammed the door, "I hate estimable young men with brown eyes!"

There  never  was  such a Christmas dinner as they had that day. The fat turkey was a sight to behold, when Hannah sent him up, stuffed, browned,
and  decorated.  So  was  the  plum  pudding,  which  melted in one's mouth, likewise the jellies, in which Amy reveled like a fly in a honeypot.
Everything  turned  out  well,  which  was  a  mercy,  Hannah said, "For my mind was that flustered, Mum, that it's a merrycle I didn't roast the
pudding, and stuff the turkey with raisins, let alone bilin' of it in a cloth."

Mr. Laurence and his grandson dined with them, also Mr. Brooke, at whom Jo glowered darkly, to Laurie's infinite amusement. Two easy chairs stood
side  by  side  at  the head of the table, in which sat Beth and her father, feasting modestly on chicken and a little fruit. They drank healths,
told stories, sang songs, 'reminisced', as the old folks say, and had a thoroughly good time. A sleigh ride had been planned, but the girls would
not leave their father, so the guests departed early, and as twilight gathered, the happy family sat together round the fire.

"Just  a  year  ago  we were groaning over the dismal Christmas we expected to have. Do you remember?" asked Jo, breaking a short pause which had
followed a long conversation about many things.

"Rather a pleasant year on the whole!" said Meg, smiling at the fire, and congratulating herself on having treated Mr. Brooke with dignity.

"I think it's been a pretty hard one," observed Amy, watching the light shine on her ring with thoughtful eyes.

"I'm glad it's over, because we've got you back," whispered Beth, who sat on her father's knee.

"Rather  a  rough  road  for  you  to  travel, my little pilgrims, especially the latter part of it. But you have got on bravely, and I think the
burdens  are  in  a  fair way to tumble off very soon," said Mr. March, looking with fatherly satisfaction at the four young faces gathered round
him.

"How do you know? Did Mother tell you?" asked Jo.

"Not much. Straws show which way the wind blows, and I've made several discoveries today."

"Oh, tell us what they are!" cried Meg, who sat beside him.

"Here  is  one." And taking up the hand which lay on the arm of his chair, he pointed to the roughened forefinger, a burn on the back, and two or
three  little  hard spots on the palm. "I remember a time when this hand was white and smooth, and your first care was to keep it so. It was very
pretty  then, but to me it is much prettier now, for in this seeming blemishes I read a little history. A burnt offering has been made to vanity,
this  hardened  palm  has  earned something better than blisters, and I'm sure the sewing done by these pricked fingers will last a long time, so
much  good  will  went  into  the  stitches.  Meg, my dear, I value the womanly skill which keeps home happy more than white hands or fashionable
accomplishments. I'm proud to shake this good, industrious little hand, and hope I shall not soon be asked to give it away."

If  Meg  had  wanted  a reward for hours of patient labor, she received it in the hearty pressure of her father's hand and the approving smile he
gave her.

"What about Jo? Please say something nice, for she has tried so hard and been so very, very good to me," said Beth in her father's ear.

He laughed and looked across at the tall girl who sat opposite, with an unusually mild expression in her face.

"In  spite of the curly crop, I don't see the 'son Jo' whom I left a year ago," said Mr. March. "I see a young lady who pins her collar straight,
laces her boots neatly, and neither whistles, talks slang, nor lies on the rug as she used to do. Her face is rather thin and pale just now, with
watching  and  anxiety,  but  I  like to look at it, for it has grown gentler, and her voice is lower. She doesn't bounce, but moves quietly, and
takes  care  of  a  certain  little  person  in  a  motherly  way  which delights me. I rather miss my wild girl, but if I get a strong, helpful,
tenderhearted  woman in her place, I shall feel quite satisfied. I don't know whether the shearing sobered our black sheep, but I do know that in
all Washington I couldn't find anything beautiful enough to be bought with the five-and-twenty dollars my good girl sent me."

Jo's  keen  eyes were rather dim for a minute, and her thin face grew rosy in the firelight as she received her father's praise, feeling that she
did deserve a portion of it.

"Now, Beth," said Amy, longing for her turn, but ready to wait.

"There's  so  little  of  her, I'm afraid to say much, for fear she will slip away altogether, though she is not so shy as she used to be," began
their  father  cheerfully. But recollecting how nearly he had lost her, he held her close, saying tenderly, with her cheek against his own, "I've
got you safe, my Beth, and I'll keep you so, please God."

After a minute's silence, he looked down at Amy, who sat on the cricket at his feet, and said, with a caress of the shining hair . . .

"I observed that Amy took drumsticks at dinner, ran errands for her mother all the afternoon, gave Meg her place tonight, and has waited on every
one with patience and good humor. I also observe that she does not fret much nor look in the glass, and has not even mentioned a very pretty ring
which  she  wears,  so  I  conclude  that  she has learned to think of other people more and of herself less, and has decided to try and mold her
character  as  carefully  as she molds her little clay figures. I am glad of this, for though I should be very proud of a graceful statue made by
her, I shall be infinitely prouder of a lovable daughter with a talent for making life beautiful to herself and others."

"What are you thinking of, Beth?" asked Jo, when Amy had thanked her father and told about her ring.

"I  read  in  _Pilgrim's Progress_ today how, after many troubles, Christian and Hopeful came to a pleasant green meadow where lilies bloomed all
year  round,  and there they rested happily, as we do now, before they went on to their journey's end," answered Beth, adding, as she slipped out
of  her  father's  arms  and  went  to the instrument, "It's singing time now, and I want to be in my old place. I'll try to sing the song of the
shepherd boy which the Pilgrims heard. I made the music for Father, because he likes the verses."

So,  sitting at the dear little piano, Beth softly touched the keys, and in the sweet voice they had never thought to hear again, sang to her own
accompaniment the quaint hymn, which was a singularly fitting song for her.


He that is down need fear no fall, He that is low no pride. He that is humble ever shall Have God to be his guide.

I am content with what I have, Little be it, or much. And, Lord! Contentment still I crave, Because Thou savest such.

Fulness to them a burden is, That go on pilgrimage. Here little, and hereafter bliss, Is best from age to age!

Part Two

No comments:

Post a Comment